#I have been thinking about this way too much
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Note
Maybe a part 2 of the arcane characters saying things they regret, but they're apologizing because I can't live after reading a angst đŤ
Making up with Arcane characters after a bad argument. | Vi, Caitlyn, Jinx, Ekko, Sevika x Gn!Reader
(Previous part)
Fine, fine, here is a happy part two guys. Take it as an apology for the tears and pain I've caused.â¨ď¸
Content: Swearing, accusations of cheating, slight angst, making up, fluff, potential spoilers for season 2, established romantic relationships, sfw
Reader has no set pronouns!
((Not proofread))
ăVI
She knew that she had fucked up. There was no way to deny or refute it either. And your absence was further proof of that.
You were always there for her, even when things got bad and she became even worse. No matter how much she yelled or drank, you were there afterward to nurture her back to health. It was so unfair of her to expect it still, after all she had said to you. She hated herself. She hated how weak and pathetic she had become. How she can't even stand straight anymore from the alcohol and couldn't win a single game since she had lost you.
And instead of Caitlyn haunting her like she used to, it was only you now. But you were crying every time. Asking her why she hated you so much. Why she couldn't care for you the way you cared for her. Why you were always the second choice despite having been there since the start.
Why, why, why.
Gritting her teeth against the headache, she made her way through the dark, familiar lanes to your small home that you once shared together. She had to talk to you. She really, really had to. Even if it's far too late now after a week of silence in-between the two of you. She had taken the time to reflect and think about everything, especially about your relationship. And it made her realise that nothing in this world was losing you too.
Knocking on your door, she nervously waited as she heard your footsteps quickly approaching her from inside. You opened the door carefully, ironically just how she had taught you, before freezing at the sight of her. She gave you a weak smile, attempting to look calm and friendly, but it still scared you off. "Hey cupca-" You tried slamming the door into her face mid greeting, but her foot was faster to jam itself in the way.
"H-Hey! Wait, please hear me out!" "Fuck off, Vi. I'm not in the mood to hear more of your bullshit. Go back to Caitlyn since I know how badly you want that!" You never cursed, and every word you spoke made her flinch. She, for some reason, didn't expect you to be this mad. But it hurt, and she deserved it. Another thing she underestimated was, unfortunately, your strength since you somehow managed to push her away and shut the door again. "Come on! Please! I... I didn't mean what I said. I just... have been losing my shit ever since what happened. The guilt is killing me, and I know it's not an excuse! You're right, I have to stop this shit! You're right, I need to stop treating your love for granted!"
She didn't know if you were even listening to her anymore, but it didn't stop the tears that burned in her eyes. "I don't give a damn about Caitlyn like that! I never did! It always you for me. You... you cared for me when no one else ever wanted to, and I was such an idiot for not appreciating it more." Her hand slammed against the wood in defeat, her head coming to rest against it as her body trembled. She was so scared of losing you. This can't be the end. "Please. Please just give me another chance to prove myself. I know I'm a fuck up but I swear I'll do better now."
Vi nearly fell right through your house entrance when you opened the door wide with a teary huff. "God, you're such an idiot... get in already before the neighbors complain." You didn't let her reply as you simply dragged her inside and locked the door again. The pitfighter watched you do so with a gentle gaze, one that felt so familiar to you. "... Fine, I'll give you another chance... but no drinking or fighting anymore. Please." You whisper to her, and she nods quickly before engulfing you in a warm hug.
She knows that she isn't fully forgiven yet, but she'll do everything in her power to prove herself worthy of your love again.
ăCAITLYN
"You're still up." Caitlyn's voice was calm and gentle now, so different from the stern and cold tone it had before. You ignored her, however, knowing better than to fall for this again. She always got like this when she knew she had screwed up and was trying to crawl back into your good graces. But this time around, you didn't allow it that easily. You refused to speak to her if she hadn't come back to apologize. And yet... you couldn't help but allow yourself at least one sharp dig at her. "And you're late to bed once again. But I suppose Officer Nolan's 'report' was just that interesting, no?" You were perhaps the only person in all auf Pultover that could ever accuse her of something so scandalous as adultery and get away with it.
It certainly would have been amusing if Caitlyn didn't feel so sick at the thought of you believing that.
Sighing, she placed her hat onto a clothing hanger, her jacket following suit. You were facing away from her on the bed, trying to read a book and rest, despite the pain in your heart. It was hard being angry at her when you loved her so deeply. But her insults had struck much deeper than that.
The bed dipped behind you, and soon enough, you felt her strong arms surrounding your body and her nose tickling your cheek. "I'm sorry, my love. I really am. I... have lost my cool, and that was wrong of me." You scoffed at her words, finding them too shallow for the pain she had caused earlier. Yet you struggled to get out of her strong grasp on you. It felt desperate. And you hated the warmth and security that it made you feel. "If that is all you have to say, then you can leave." You hissed out weakly but couldn't find any malice in it. Just heartbreak, that solidified in more tears burning in your eyes. "Because how... how could you ever say that I could betray you? Do you know how that makes me feel? Do you care?"
Caitlyn hummed against the nape of your neck soothingly, a way to acknowledge the plight she had caused you without revealing her own tears. The grief had made her into a monster. A monster that hurt its friends, family, and most importantly, you. It was unforgivable, and yet she wanted to prove herself worthy of you anyway. She wanted to show you that she hadn't changed deep down like everyone claimed. She was still yours.
"... I will find a way to end this war and resolve it peacefully as soon as I can. I swear it to you." She began, her voice low and gentle, as she listened to the sound of your hiccups and sniffling. This wasn't what she wanted. "And I apologize, truly, for what I called you... I know that you are loyal and trustworthy. Much more than I ever could be... I'm still your Caitlyn." The last part was whispered quietly, as she tried everyone in her power to not break down in front of you like this.
She hated what she had become deep down. She knew it was wrong and that her mother must've been turning in her grave at the sight of what she had done. But what she couldn't handle at all was you hating and leaving her.
There was a moment of silence before you turned to face her and immideatly hugged her impossibly close as you cried into her arms. She rubbed your back lovingly, understanding that this was your way of accepting her apology. But forgiveness will still be a long journey she was willing to take.
For now, she'd rest in your embrace thankfully.
ăJINX
Deep down, you knew that she didn't mean what she said. She never would do anything to hurt you. Silco's death was just killing her more than anyone could have expected, and it was hard for everyone to deal with. But you just couldn't take the pain and hurt she caused you anymore. You've been there since day one. You were always at her side. You always took care of her when no one else wanted to. And you understood her better than she did herself. But it was ultimately just not enough. Or so you thought.
The young girl that was now dragging you through the lanes reminded you of her too. She didn't speak a word to you, and for some reason, you didn't have it in you to protest against her odd actions either. She somehow seemed to recognize you the second you bumped into her. And that was enough for her to take your hand and lead you to a very familiar hideout. Perhaps it was fate that brought you here again when you needed Jinx the most.
"Hey kid, who's our little guest-?" The rest of the young woman's words died on her tongue, and it left you simply staring at each other. There was a familiar haze in her eyes, one that you often saw when the voices were taking over. She once mentioned that you sometimes became a part of her hallucinations during longer absences, and that reminder alone made your heart ache. You shouldn't have run away that day. But what other choice did you have? She didn't trust you anymore. She didn't think you should be together anymore. Why were you even here?
"S-sorry... I'm just going to leave..." You muttered as your ears rung and that familiar burning in your eyes made your sight blurry. You felt suffocated and somehow also angry, wishing she could just see how much you loved and cared for her. But just as you were turning away to run again, her strong hand was quicker and held you back by your arm. "Wait. Let's just... talk, alright? Like we always do?" That was your thing. Whenever things got bad, you'd sit down and talk calmly to her about it. She used to scoff at it every time... yet she was the one who suggested now for once. Something about it shook you so hard that it made the first tears finally spill at the recognition she had given you for all the work you've put into her.
Jinx panicked a little at that, unsure of how to comfort you, yet at Isha's stern frown and cross of her small arms, she just hugged you for the first time in a while. And god, did she miss it.
Perhaps it was good to show the little girl a picture of you after all.
"I'm sorry. I'm really sorry, I swear, sweetie! I... I won't ever say stuff like that again. Just don't leave me. Please don't leave me. I just, I was just-" You hushed her by just hugging her tighter and shaking your head. "It's okay... just hold me for a while. We can talk later... I missed you so much." You whispered, voice breaking into sobs. Jinx hummed weakly and sighed against your hair, the familiar scent making her relax and feel better at last.
Isha grinned to herself behind you before quickly sneaking off to let you talk things out.
ăEKKO
To say that the entire firelight hideout was pissed at him would be an understatement. Absolutely everyone disagreed with the way he treated you, and the side eyes he got very much confirmed this. But the worst part of it all was definitely you avoiding him like the plague.
Every time he entered a room, you were the first one to leave in a hurry. Every time he tried speaking to you, you either ignored him or found an excuse to get away. Every time someone even mentioned his name to you, your mood seemed to dampen. And that hurt so much that it killed him. This isn't how he wanted you to feel about him. He was your boyfriend, damnit it. Yet he acknowledged that he was failing at his job way more than he should've allowed himself to. He had to fix this somehow.
Ekko couldn't just lose you over his own foolishness. You were the one person who motivated him to keep going even on his worst days. You were the light he fought for. The person he battled to come home to every day. He couldn't handle your absence any longer, especially at night when he laid wide awake in your empty bed without you.
And so, he finally had enough and cornered you one night up in the tree during a patrol you had together. One, he definitely didn't pull the strings for to happen. And ever the one to abide by his orders despite your current dismay, you were now avoiding his gaze whilst you watched your sleeping home below. It was peaceful and calm, but the pain lingered between you two too much to enjoy the moment. He didn't know how to break the deafening silence, and it made him think of backing out on his initial plan... until you surprised him by speaking up first.
"I'm... sorry for avoiding you. I didn't mean for this to become your last resort. I just... didn't want to be a burden anymore." "Wait, wait, wait... who said that you were a burden, I... I should be the one apologizing right now. Because I was wrong about every fucking thing I said to you." The words spilled out in panic at the mere thought of you blaming yourself. He never wanted you to feel like this. It made him feel even worse about himself. This wasn't right. "You're not useless. You do so much for us, for me, and I take it all for granted like the asshole I am! And I fully acknowledge that now... I shouldn't have snapped at you like that. There is no excuse for it." He shook his head in disappointment at himself, wondering if this was it now. He'd understand if you broke up with him now... but instead, you seemed to be in the mood to surprise him alot today.
"Did you... like the food I made you?" He blinked at your question in confusion, yet answered honestly. "Best thing I had all week." "Then I guess I'll forgive you... just don't do that again." Ekko chuckled weakly at your words, relief filling his senses whilst he pulled you close to press a kiss to your head. "Would never dream of it... wanna ditch patrol and fly around town?" You mirrored his sly smile, glad he had the same thing on his mind as you did. "Sure thing. But let's make it a race."
He let you win.
ăSEVIKA
She took some time to cool off after your argument and returned later into the night with a clearer mind. Sevika had actually reflected on what you had said to her, and she knew you were ultimately right. She was extremely overprotective and stubborn, two things that didn't mesh well and often ended in her thinking you couldn't take care of yourself. Even if she knew better than to actually believe that.
You were strong, especially mentally. It's what drew her into you to begin with. But with the fall of Silco and a war being on the verge of breaking out against Piltover, she had no choice but to make sure that you never left her sight. And if you did, then you had to be somewhere she knew was safe and away from all the chaos she dealt with daily. It helped her focus and stay calm to know that you're okay. Yet despite how much she cared, she still fucked it all up for herself again.
And now she had to fix it, something she was never good at.
She felt awfully guilty at the sight of the things you've lovingly prepared for her, now laying forgotten and cold on the kitchen counter. She truly didn't deserve someone as kind as you. And yet she considered herself too selfish to let you go.
Slowly approaching the bedroom door, she paused to hear if you were awake or not. Unfortunately, you were, but she only knew this from the faintest sound of your sniffling and sobbing that drifted through the wooden door. Sighing to herself, she knocked once, deciding to just rake things slow and as calmly as possible. You had sustained an injury after all, and her mind was reeling at the thought of it getting worse without any proper care. "What do you want?!" Your weak voice yelled at her, and it made her frown. Yeah, you were definitely beyond pissed.
"I want to talk." Her gruff voice said, and it may have sounded like a demand if the underlying care and worry didn't overshadow it so clearly. Your silence made her initially think you were ignoring her until the door slowly opened and revealed your disheveled form. "... well, go ahead." You muttered, one hand cradling the side of your hip that was clumsily bandaged up by you. You were never good at stuff like that.
"Let me take care of the wound whilst we're at it. Can't have ya dying on me because of an infection." She sighed out before simply dragging you to your shared bed and pulling out your medkit. You didn't protest or complain and let her do as she pleased, whilst you carefully listened to her speak with an unreadable expression.
"Listen. I... get it. I really do. The way I treat you isn't right, and I know you're grown enough to take care of yourself, but... I can't risk losing you too now. It drives me crazy to think about. Even if that ain't much of an excuse, and I get that too." She was never this honest before. Usually, she simply deflected or blamed someone else. But here she was, for once admitting openly to being the problem. "Just... be more careful out there. That's all I ask of you. I won't comment on it otherwise anymore though, unless you're in serious danger. I promise." Finishing the last of her bandaging, she hummed at it now looking much securer. This way, you are sure to recover much faster.
Taking a deep breath, you nodded your head at her words, deciding to give her another chance to prove herself. You understood where she was coming from after all. "Okay, fine. I'll accept your apology... if you help me cook." She grinned at that slightly with a casual shrug. "Fine by me, if I get a taste of your heavenly cooking, sweetheart."
#arcane#arcane x genderneutral reader#arcane x y/n#arcane x you#arcane x reader#arcane vi#arcane vi x reader#vi#vi x reader#arcane caitlyn#arcane caitlyn x reader#caitlyn x reader#caitlyn#caitlyn kiramman#arcane jinx#arcane jinx x reader#jinx x reader#jinx#arcane ekko#arcane ekko x reader#ekko#ekko x reader#arcane sevika#arcane sevika x reader#sevika#sevika x reader#pitfighter vi
1K notes
¡
View notes
Text
Bernie is wrong. He has always been wrong and is still wrong. The flaw in his theory is what he deems the âwealthy eliteâ versus what everyday Americans consider them to be. Voters donât see all billionaires as the elites. They see college-educated liberals on the coasts, some of whom are billionaires, as elites.
Bernie-style populism didnât land because billionaires figured out long ago they could undermine it by being socially right-wing, and the working class would forgive their wealth and privilege. Thatâs why this same demographic is willing to make it rain for grifters like Joel Osteen and Pat Robertson. Thatâs why they worship the wealthiest man on the planet like a God and consider him some real-life Tony Stark. People dismissed Donald Trump as a shameless attention-hungry New York oligarch until he called Mexicans rapists. Then he shot up to the top of the GOP primary polls. The working class didnât think much of Elon Musk until he said âpronouns suck.â Then he became their hero. A scion of working-class Pennsylvania lost his US Senate seat last week to a hedge fund manager from Connecticut. West Virginia elected their richest man to the Senate after electing him governor â as a Democrat and later a Republican. Ohio tossed out their longtime Democratic senator, known for his strong support of labor rights, for â literally, no joke â a used-car salesman.
You canât tell me the working class in America thinks being a billionaire alone is what makes one a âwealthy elite.â There are significant factors at play here Bernie is either oblivious to or purposely ignorant of.
In college, a professor once told me that Communism never succeeded in the United States because we are too religious and proud as a country. Religion, traditions, and culture were never widely discredited the way they were in Europe and Asia, where the clergy and nobility kept the bourgeoisie in figurative chains for centuries. The relative ease of social mobility made America unique compared to its Western counterparts. Historically, American progressivism has been focused on expanding social mobility â initially limited to only white men â to identity groups who had been denied it at the start: blacks, women, and immigrants. We have done it, with various amounts of success. While it may seem counterintuitive, Americans pride themselves in being the nation that pioneered the idea that wealth and status can be achieved through ingenuity and hard work and not just based on a lucky roll of the genetic dice, as it was in the Old World. It doesnât mean we donât have generational wealth in our country; we do, but since it isnât the sole way to achieve wealth and power, we donât care nearly as much about destroying all of it. Further, we will happily endorse it if the oligarchs and the aristocrats vow to promote and protect the social values we care about and the social hierarchy that benefits us.
Itâs one of the reasons I believe Bernie could never beat Trump. If you ask working-class people what they want: an anti-immigrant, anti-intellectual billionaire or a Vermont socialist backed by kids from Harvard and UC Berkeley who hate our traditions and customs, the working class will always back the billionaire.
âNick Rafter, "Bernie Sanders Can Take a Seat"
1K notes
¡
View notes
Text
Everything's Fine if You Pretend
Male Reader x Danielle
Tags: 28k, smut, first time, creampie, oral
The story is not ours, we alternate the original story to match our desired settings.
âIâm sorry, what?â
Danielle cocked her head with the same impish grin she always wore.
âSheâs uh, asking if you would like to come to the wedding.â
âWhy?â She almost seemed cockyâoh she always did.
âBecause youâre a friend.â I said, stepping over the curb as we crossed the street. âShe likes you more than me.â
âYour sister wants me to be her plus-one? Seems a little weird.â
âMy plus-one, actually.â I managed. âSheâs forcing me to take somebody and she wants it to be you.â
Danielle smirked. âWhy me? Surely if she wants you to take somebody, you can just ask one of your pals to take to a boring wedding.â
âYouâre really going to make me say it, arenât you?â
Her knowing grin could light up the sky. âAbsolutely. So, I ask again, why does it have to be me?â
The sigh that escaped my lips was filled with a mixture of defeat and deep embarrassment. âBecause she thinks weâre dating.â
âThere it is!â Danielle laughed loudly as we approached the roundabout.
âItâs not what you think! They wouldnât stop bugging me about trying to find a girlfriend. âGirlfriendâ this, âgirlfriendâ that and âhow come you are twenty and still single?â Ugh. Itâs exhausting.â
âThey?â
âWho else do you think? my parents, my sister.â
Danielle crossed her arms over her chest and playfully nudged me with her shoulder. âSo, your first instinct was to lie and say that I was your girlfriend?â
âWell, I tried a few times, but it never worked out. Since they wouldnât shut up about it, I figured the best course of action was to say that we were dating just to get them off my back.â
âOkay then, new question. How long have we been dating, sweetie?â
âI told them last November.â
Danielleâs eyes widened and her mouth was held agape in a smile of mock disbelief. âNo way, weâve been dating for a year and you havenât told me?â
âWe arenât dating!â
âHmm. Itâs a wonder you havenât proposed...â
âDanielle! We. Arenât. Dating.â
âWell, apparently we are, since that must be the reason why your mom invited me to join at every holiday dinner since last year, and why my parents let me.â
âWait, what?â
âWeâre neighbours, you dummy! You think our parents donât talk with each other? The day you told your mom we were dating, she told my parents, who asked me about it. I just played along.â
âYou knew this entire time and said nothing? What was with the entire conversation up to this point?â
She grinned and leaned her head over my shoulder. âDo you have any idea how fun it is? You get all red and you tuck your head like a turtle.â
I pushed her off, but returned her smile. âYou such a ⌠â
âHey now, you are the one who lied. Iâm just having some fun with the consequences. So, what about this wedding?â
I sighed. âAll you have to do is say that you canât make it. Just say that you have to go visit a family or something.â
âWhy do I have to do it?â
âBecause she wonât believe me. If she hears it from you, then she will.â
âWhy not just tell her the truth that we arenât actually a couple?â
âAnd admit that I lied for almost a year? Pass.â
Danielle stretched her arms above her head and leaned back, which helped to accentuate her figure. One of the consequences to growing up with a female best friend was watching her develop into a beautiful young woman. She was slender but toned thanks to her years of being in cheerleader. Her body was shaped well underneath her light grey hoodie and black skinny jeans, with gentle curves and supple breasts. They were small but seemed to be fairly well shaped.
Did I have a crush on her? I used to.
Did she know that? Absolutely.
Did she seem to care? Not at all.
-
âWhy not lie and tell that we broke up?â
âThey like you too much. I think that might actually kill them.â
Danielle rolled her eyes. âYou know this charade is going to meet an ugly end eventually, right? The longer it goes on, the worse itâs going to be when they peek behind the curtain.â
âIâll burn that bridge when I get to it. For now, can you just tell her that you canât make it to the wedding?â I pleaded. Danielle sighed as we turned the corner on the sidewalk and began walking up the driveway to my house.
âFine. But you owe me. Anything else I need to know?â
âShe was thinking about inviting you out for breakfast tomorrow. Again, all you need to do is say you already have plans.â
Danielle frowned. âYou know Iâll be cashing in these favours sooner rather than later, right?â
I laxed in relief and unlocked the front door. âIâll take whatever I can get. Just... please.â
-
My sister called out the moment the door opened. âHow was the movie?â
Before I had a chance to open my mouth, Danielle chirped up with a wicked smile. âIt was great, Unnie!â
My sister almost sprinted around the corner, and I could only hold my head in shame. âDanielle!â my sister cried gleefully and pulling her into a tight hug, her eyes glared daggers at me.
âWhy donât you go get her a drink?â
âDiet coke please, sweetie.â Danielle grinned.
I had to keep from cursing under my breath as I kicked off my shoes and stepped towards the kitchen. Over my shoulder, I could tell my sister lowered her voice as she quietly spoke to Danielle, but she was still so excited that I could easily hear them both.
âSweetie? Thatâs new.â
I swear, I could see the grin on Danielleâs face even around the corner.
âYeah, we kept it really casual for a while, but we talked and weâre ready to start taking things a bit more seriously. Heâs actually taking me out for brunch tomorrow.â
I winced, but removed the requested drink from the fridge. Really? Her choice for alternate plans was a date?
âOh really? we planned on having breakfast tomorrow. He never said anything about a date.â
âOh, well if you two have plans, then we can easily reschedule...â
âNonsense! You two enjoy your date. Has he told you about the wedding?â
I could see Danielleâs feigned curiosity when I stepped back into the room.
âWhat wedding?â
The death glares my sister gave made me silently vow to slap Danielle.
âIâve been telling you to ask her for weeks.â
âNoona, I justâŚâ she cut me off by turning back to face Danielle.
âWe are going to a relativeâs wedding in Jeju the day after tomorrow. I know this is extremely last minute...â Her dagger-like stare made a bead of sweat form on the back of my neck. â...but I was wondering if you wanted to come with us?â
Danielle tilted her head like she was remembering something. That, or dumping the bullshit out of her ears.
âRight, my parents mentioned that you two were gonna be gone for a few days. They never said anything about me coming with you, though.â
âWell, I wanted HIM to be the one to ask you, but obviously he still hasnât after a month. Youâd think that he would care at least a little bit.â
âNoona...â I fumbled for a lie that seemed more appropriate than âI didnât ask her because weâre not datingâ. ââŚI figured she wouldnât enjoy it. Itâs just a wedding, and I donât want to force her to do something sheâll hate.â
I passed Danielle her drink. Unfortunately, my sister seemed intent on winning this battle. âThat is her choice to make, not yours. Ask her.â
A sigh escaped my lips while I looked between the two women. One glaring like she was going to beat me with the business end of a flip-flop, and the other trying her hardest to keep from laughing out loud.
âWould you like to come to Jeju with me for the wedding?â Danielleâs smile dripped with her classic impish charm.
âI would love to.â
-
When the door was carefully closed, I turned back to Danielle who made herself comfortable sitting on the edge of my bed while sipping her drink.
âDan, what the fuck?â
She chuckled. âWhat? Did I do something wrong?â
âAll you had to do was say you had plans, and then you wouldnât need to come to this wedding.â
âI donât have plans, and I want to come.â
âYou do?â
Danielle set her can on my nightstand and lied back on the bed, spreading her arms out towards either side like she was trying to make half a snow angel in the wrinkles of my comforter.
âYeah. I donât have anything to do, and this genuinely sounds like it will be fun. Three days in Jeju? Count me in.â
âYou do realize weâre going to have to pretend the entire trip, right?â
âThatâs whatâs gonna make it fun.â
âYouâre an ass.â I smiled and sat down on the bed, looking down at her.
âAgain, Iâm just enjoying the consequences of your actions.â
A moment of silence passed. I scratched the side of my face.
âDid you have to use a date as your way out of breakfast tomorrow?â
Danielle propped herself up on her elbows and grinned. âHey, it gets you out of having to have breakfast with her too.â
âOkay, good point. But brunch? Really?â
âItâs the first thing that came to mind.â
âI thought only old people called it brunch.â
âYou can call it whatever you want!â
âLate breakfast.â
âFine.â
âEarly lunch.â
âSure.â
âVery early dinner.â
Danielle pursed her lips. âAre you done?â
âMidnight snack?â
She sighed. âOkay, this conversation isnât going anywhere. Tomorrow, Iâll come over at ten, and then we can head out. What do you wanna do? Another movie?â
âHuh? I thought we were going to eat.â
âWe donât have to, dumbass!â Danielle laughed. âI just said that to get both of us out of breakfast. As long as we leave and stay gone for an hour or two, it doesnât matter what we do. So, what do you want to do tomorrow?â
âI donât know, what do you want?â
âHmm, itâs like talking to a brick wall, except a wall is usually more decisive.â She said, rolling her eyes.
âFuck. You.â
âThatâs the plan.â she smirked. âYou know, since weâre dating now, and thatâs what couples do, but weâre gonna need to be quiet since your sister is right downstairs.â
âDan...â
âNo, actually, Iâm supposed to be the one calling your name.â
âDanielle!â
-
As it turned out, late breakfast was exactly what we did. Danielle sat across from me in the booth, slowly picking away at her Bibimbap while I chowed down on my Bulgoki. As usual, we were both dressed in our hoodies and jeans like a pair of mannequins. But, something was different about Danielle. It was subtle.
âAre you wearing makeup?â I asked, and she batted her eyes.
âJust a bit of foundation. Why, see something you like?â
âI donât think Iâve ever seen you wear makeup. Iâm surprised.â
âWell, if weâre going to a wedding tomorrow, then I need some practice.â
âDuring early lunch...â
Danielle rolled her eyes. âWell, a girl needs makeup for a date.â
âThis isnât a date.â I sighed.
âYeah, but your sister thinks so, and thatâs what matters.â
âThere is no way she saw that you were wearing makeup.â
Danielle took another forkful and chuckled. âShe noticed the moment I walked in the door.â
âI doubt that.â
âHey, donât get mad because it took you half an hour to see it.â
âYeah, but you were only in the house for like, fifteen seconds!â
âAnd during that time, she commented about it and said that I did a good job.â
âWhen?â
âWhen you went back upstairs to grab your hoodie.â Danielle said, matter-of-factly.
âYouâre pulling my leg.â
âAm not. Here, look at that couple over there.â Danielle pointed her gaze and I followed it to a pair that was sitting at a table towards the middle of the room. Why they werenât at one of the many open booths near the windows, I didnât know.
âWhat do you see about them?â Danielle asked.
âWell, a guy and a girl. Theyâre having a very early dinner together.â
âYouâre never going to call it brunch, are you?â
âNot on your life.â
Danielle sighed. âFine. The girl. Is she wearing makeup?â
I turned my attention away from guy, and towards his companion. From this distance though, I couldnât make any confirmations on whether she was wearing makeup. She looked completely natural.
âNo.â
Danielle made a quiet noise like a buzzer for an incorrect answer. âItâs subtle, but lipstick at the very least. If I had to guess, I would also say a bit of a touch of foundation.â
âHow can you tell?â
âBecause I can. Now, about more serious matters,â Danielle turned back to me, but I kept my gaze fixed on the couple. The restaurant was quiet, and I could faintly overhear the boy talking, even though his voice was lowered.
âHey! You there?â
âHuh?â My attention was torn back to Danielle, who was staring with an amused expression.
âDid you hear anything I asked?â
âUh, yeah?â
âYouâ I asked what the plan was for the wedding.â
I faltered. âWeâre... pretending to be a couple?â
Danielle rolled her eyes so wide it must have hurt.
âThatâs already been established! Iâm asking when are we leaving? How are we travelling? What are we doing when weâre at Jeju? Whatâs the plan for the hotel? What time is the wedding? When are we coming back?â
I winced at the assault of questions. âOkay, okay, I get it.â I took a deep breath.
âAs far as I know, weâre driving down to Jeju, and weâre leaving at noon tomorrow. Knowing my sister, weâll actually end up leaving at eleven, and she would want you to be packed and at our house by nine thirty. When weâre at Jeju, weâre going to check into the hotel and hang out there until dinner, and then weâre going to Cheonjiyeon Waterfalls.â
âSounds romantic.â Danielle joked. I ignored the red in my cheeks.
âAnyway, then we go back to the hotel and in the morning, we get ready for the reception. It starts at one, everyone is there by noon, sheâll makes us be there for ten, you know the drill. The wedding ends after dinner, we stay at the hotel again, then head home in the morning.â
âAlright, but that still leaves one question.â
âWhatâs that?â
âThe hotel.â Danielle raised her eyebrows like I should know what she was implying.
âWhat about the hotel?â
Danielleâs eyebrows dropped to an annoyed glare. âHow many rooms, dummy? Are the three of us staying in the same room?â
âUh, no.â I said quickly. It was difficult to meet her eyes. âTwo rooms. One for her, and the other for us two.â
âOkay, so weâll have to be quiet when we have sex if your sister is in the next room.â
I decided not to speak, and buried my face into my bulgoki. It tasted great just a minute ago, but now it tasted like shame. Danielle just smirked and pressed her opening.
âWho knows, maybe while youâre railing me, sheâll be able to hear us on the other side of the wall.â
Danielle had always been... blunt, but this vulgarity was new. Hearing her talk like that made all the blood in my body rush to my face. Well, that, and one other place.
âDan! Whatâs wrong with you?â
She holds up her hands defensively, like I was the one crossing the line.
âHey, if weâre dating, your sister expects us to be having sex.â
âAgain, weâre just pretending. And itâs only for three days!â
âWhat about when we get back? Whatâs your brilliant scheme then?â
I winced into the few bites left of my bulgoki. âI donât know. Iâll think of something.â
Danielle polished off the last of her bibimbap and grinned. âWell, you better think quickly. You done eating?â
âYeah.â
âOkay. Iâm gonna go to the washroom, you can pay, and then weâll head out.â
âWait, why do I have to pay?â I protested.
âBecause I know that your sister slipped you some money. Iâll be right back!â
Danielle left the table, and I took one last bite before signalling the waiter. Meanwhile, I tried to calm down the erection that had formed in my pants. I really didnât need her to see it when I stood up to leave. Why was she being so care-free now godamit.
Did she like the idea of us being together? No, absolutely not. She expressed a long time ago that she didnât see me that way, when I had the guts to confess to her in six grade. We barely talked for months afterwards. Now, she was just taking the opportunity of my stupid lie to torment me. There wasnât any point in getting hung up on something that was never going to happen.
-
It was a few minutes before Danielle returned, and I gave her an exhausted smile. Her cheeks were red when she looked at me, and she almost looked shy when she sat down. I raised an eyebrow.
âWhat, did you fall in or something?â
Danielle shook her head. âNo. You didnât check your phone?â
âI left it at home. Oh god, what kind of horrible memes did you send me this time?â
Danielle paused. âUh, youâll see.â
âGreat. I canât wait to get home and question your sanity. Letâs go.â
-
Aside from Danielle stopping to play with a small terrier being walked by an older man, our stroll back was uneventful. Danielle returned to her house as I stepped into mine. I wasnât surprised when I immediately heard my sister walk out of the living room.
âHow was your date?â She called.
âGood.â
âDid you tell her aboutâŚâ
She rounded the corner, and I cut her off. âYes, I told her about the plans, what time weâre leaving, and everything else. Donât worry.â
She didnât look satisfied yet. âDid you pay with the money I gave you?â
âNoona, I would have paid even if you didnât give me money.â
âWell, Iâm sorry for worrying. Danielleâs a good one.â
âYou donât need to worry about it. Everythingâs under control.â
The slight wrinkles in her face deepened.
âDo you really love Danielle?â
Sucker punch to the gut.
âUh... what?â
âIâm just asking, because it seems like things arenât going very well. You two obviously brought your relationship to the next level, but it doesnât seem like youâre happy. Danielle is, but you arenât.â
âWhy do you ask?â I said cautiously.
She frowned. âYou two have been dating for over a year, but Iâve never even seen you hug each other, much less anything else. I understand keeping things casual, but intentionally not inviting her to the wedding? Why do you not want her to come?â
I stammered. âBecause... I donât think she would enjoy it. There wonât be anyone she knows there, and...â My voice faltered. She sighs.
âIf things are going badly between you two, all you have to do is tell me. I can help, you know.â
âEverythingâs fine, Noona. I promise.â
She just got a sad look in her eyes and turned away. âI really wish you wouldnât lie to me. I donât want you to lose the best woman youâre ever going to find.â
âWell, Iâm gonna go upstairs.â
âYou left your phone in the kitchen.â She offered flatly. âDanielle sent some... interesting pictures.â
I winced.
âTheyâre called memes. Donât worry, Danielle doesnât actually mean those things.â
âUh-huh.â Was her only reply while I grabbed my phone. I didnât look at the screen until I was halfway up the stairs. At that point, my jaw dropped and I almost tripped. I could only manage to stumble up the rest of the steps and shut myself in my room before looking closer at the four pictures.
Only one was the horrible meme I expected. Instead, my gaze was affixed on the other three pictures.
They were photos, obviously taken in a public washroom.
Photos of Danielle.
The first was a classic selfie using the washroom mirror, but Danielle wasnât wearing her hoodie. Her hand not holding the phone had her shirt pulled up to her chin, revealing her lack of a bra.
Fuck.
From her slender, smooth stomach all the way up to her navel, her skin was the same flawless shade of pale ivory as it wrapped around and under her supple breasts. They were perhaps a single handful each, with delicate skin and perfect, small, perky nipples in the center of each mass.
Danielleâs cheeks were red, but her smile couldnât have been brighter.
The second photo was similar to the first, in the sense that the photo was looking into the reflection of the mirror. This time, Danielleâs shirt was removed altogether, but she was facing away so I could only see her soft back and a hint of sideboob. She grinned over her shoulder, and her other hand had her jeans and panties pulled down below the cheeks of her rear end, showing her small yet pert, bare and flawless ass. It was clear even in the soft shading of her bottom.
I knew I should have looked awayâit was wrong for me to be looking at these pictures, much less staring at them. Surely, she sent them to the wrong person. Either that, or she had sent the wrong photos altogether. Either way, my lower appendage was as hard as granite and made my jeans very uncomfortable, very quickly.
The last picture made my throat catch. She was sitting on the floor of the washroom, using her hoodie like a towel underneath her. Her hand held the phone in between her legs, looking back up at her. The only thing she wore was a smile.
Her legs were spread, her other hand was placed on the smooth, hairless patch of skin in between her thighs. Because of that, the view of her lower lips was very obscured, but no less erotic. Only her thumb, forefinger and pinky were visible. I could take a wild guess as to where the other two fingers were.
I donât know how long I stared at the pictures of my best friend, completely slack-jawed. I mean, sure, Iâve thought about what Danielle looked like naked. Every straight guy with a female friend has done the same. Still, I never expected to get proven so wrong. Every part of her was somehow better than the mental image my mind had conjured. It was different, yes, but definitely better.
Her breasts looked slightly different than I imagined, but they fit much better proportionally. Her ass was pert, years of cheerleader made it toned and smooth like two perfect globes.
Her pussy was clean shaven instead of having a small patch as I expected. However, the lack of hair simply let all of the attention be directed towards the beautiful flower being spread open by a pair of delving fingers.
Somehow, I fumbled around enough to sit down on the edge of my bed and start a video call. After undoing the button on my jeans and letting the bulge in my boxers have a bit more room to breathe, of course.
Danielle answered before the first ring finished. Her hoodie was discarded, leaving her in just her t-shirt. In my mindâs eye, I could still see it bunched up underneath her chin and showing her shapely breasts. Danielle still had the same smile from the photos.
âCalling so soon after the date? A girl would think youâre needy. I take it you liked my meme?â
âI uh... I think you might have sent me the wrong pictures.â
âOh no.â Danielle frowned. âWhat pictures did I send?â
âUh, there was um... they were photos of you.â
âOf me?â Danielle raised an amused eyebrow.
âYeah.â I confirmed. âWith... without clothes.â
Danielle grinned. âWhy are you so awkward?â
âHuh?â
âI meant to send those. Thatâs what I was doing in the washroom before we left.â
I floundered. âSo, you mean thatâŚâ
âWhile you were paying, I was taking... an artistic photo of mine, and sending them to you. Itâs a shame you left your phone at home. I would have loved to see you get so embarrassed in public.â
âWhy?â
Danielle giggled and laid back. I could tell that like me, she had been sitting on the edge of her bed, but had now lied down and was holding her phone in the air above her face. Her hair fanned out around her head like a halo.
âBecause couples send each other nudes, dummy! If weâre gonna pretend to be a couple, it would be a lot more convincing if you have a few pictures of me on your phone. I can send some more, if you wantâŚâ
âNo!â I said quickly. Danielleâs grin faded, and I took a breath.
âDan, my sister saw those pictures.â
Her smile returned, but it seemed like it was only halfway there. âGood.â
âHow is that good?!â
âBecause,â said Danielle, ââŚthat should help to convince her that weâre dating. Otherwise, why would I be sending you nudes? Speaking of which, how did she even see them? Donât you have a lock on your phone?â
âNo.â
âWhy not? Arenât you worried about random people going through your stuff?â
âHow would they do that? I keep my phone on me all the time.â
Danielle just stared, unimpressed. âYou have your phone at all times, huh?â
âOkayâŚâ I relented. âI left it at home a few times, but my sister is the only person whoâll see it, and sheâs not much for snooping.â
âAnd itâs because she doesnât snoop that she saw a picture of me fingering myself?â
I swallowed my tongue along with the rest of my argument. Danielle had a point. She must have seen her victory, since her eyes twinkled.
âIf you want to make my tits your home screen, Iâll just ask that you put a password first. I think one look at my goodies is enough for your sister.â
In the small image of myself in the lower corner of the screen, I could see the red on my cheeks. After a moment of silence, Danielle chuckled.
âWhat did she think?â
âWhat do you mean?â
âDid she make any comments about the pictures or anything?â
I shook my head. âUh, no. She just said that you sent some interesting pictures, and that was it.â
The gap between Danielleâs eyebrows narrowed. âI know your sister, and that seems strangely vague for her.â
âI think...â The words struggled to form proper sentences. ââŚI think itâs because she doesnât entirely believe us.â
âShe doesnât think weâre dating?â
âNo, I think itâs more along the lines of her believing that weâre dating a little too much.â
Danielle looked confused. âOkay, youâre gonna have to walk me through this one because you arenât making sense.â
I let out a sigh. âThink of it from her point of view. Weâve been âdatingâ for a year, but absolutely nothing has changed. We still act the same way we always haveâas best friends and neighbours. Now, I was so reluctant to invite you to the wedding.â
Danielle waited after I finished my sentence. Several seconds passed before she lifted her hand and made a keep going movement. âCome on, you gotta give me a little more here. Instead of beating around the bush, just say whatâs the problem.â
âFrom what I understand, she fully believes that weâre dating, but also thinks that weâre having some problems and are on the verge of breaking up.â
Danielle frowned. âI literally sent you a picture of myâand she thinks weâre gonna split? What kind of logic is that?â
I struggled to find the best way to put my thoughts into words. No matter what way I said it, it sounded odd.
âActually, I think she believes that youâre in the relationship, but not me.â
âAnd how does that work?â
âI actively avoided inviting you to anything. Now youâre sending me nudes. I think she believes that Iâm going to break up with you.â
âOh.â Danielle looked genuinely speechless. I could usually tell what she was thinking at any given moment. Right now, she was an enigma. She risked a half-grin.
âIt sounds like you should pick up the slack, make her believe.â
âAnd how am I supposed to do that? Weâre not actually dating. I canât just start making out with you in front of her.â
âWhy not? I sent you nudes. Take the leap.â
âWait, what?â
Danielle just gave a weak smile, her cheeks flushing with a tinge of pink. âIâve gotta start packing. See you tomorrow.â
The last thing I saw before the call ended was Danielle giving a kiss towards the camera. I was stuck there, dumbfounded, and trying to wrap my head around what was happening.
-
Danielle was taking this âpretend coupleâ thing way too far. The worst part was, I couldnât even bring myself to be mad about it. She had made it clear a long time ago that she wasnât interestedâbasically just told me to grow a pair and step up the act on our fake relationship.
Take the leap?
I shook my head, trying to force the thoughts away like they were insects that had crawled in my ears. No. I buried those fantasies years ago. I wonât let them dig their way out just because of an act. I fell in love with her a long time ago. If that happened again...
I wasnât sure if there was any way to recover from that.
I opened our text messages again and tried not to stare at the nude selfies as I deleted them. Sadly, I couldnât make them vanish from my mind as easily as they vanished from the screen.
As much as I tried to ignore it, Danielle was the only person on my mind.
-
We were planning to leave at noon. My sister decided to wake me up at six. I couldnât really complain. I had my alarm set for six-thirty. Damn that woman and the curse of punctuality she bestowed upon me.
Sleeping was peaceful. I rarely had dreams, so it was just a time where nothing could bother me. No worries. No memories. No apprehensions. No fears. No regrets. Not even Danielle could break the veil. She had plagued my thoughts for over a dozen hours after the video chat. It was only when I finally managed to drift away from consciousness that my mind went quiet. It was wonderful.
Unfortunately, I had to wake up.
From my extra-hot shower, to brushing my teeth, to double-checking that I had everything packed, Danielle resided rent-free in the forefront of my mind. Most of the images in my head werenât even the precious memories of her nude selfies. They were there, absolutely, but the images of her naked form were drowned among the flash of her smile, the sound of her laugh, and the twinkle in her eyes.
This weekend was going to be a nightmare.
It only got worse when Danielle showed up a quarter after nine. I answered the door, and was surprised by Danielle jumping forward and embracing me in a tight hug. Even through her hoodie, I could feel the curves of her body pressing against mine. Her hair was loose and draping down to her shoulders like a shimmering curtain. It smelled like strawberries. Her face was cradled on my chest, and I heard her whisper in my ear.
âHug me back, idiot.â
I hesitantly reciprocated, wrapping my arms around her lower back. I tried to ignore how wonderful it was. Danielle felt so good in my embrace. It seemed so natural to hold her like this, and I became painfully aware of the reality. We had been best friends for our entire lives, but I could probably count on one hand the number of times that we actually made physical contact with each other for anything other than a high-five or a friendly punch. When was the last time we hugged?
I couldnât even begin to say. Maybe we never did.
We stayed like that for several seconds too long, breathing against each other in silence. Eventually, Danielle moved her head a tiny bit to look down the hall.
âHey Noona!â
âHello Danielle. Have you had breakfast?â
Danielle pulled away from the hug, slipped off her shoes, and casually began walking down the hall like nothing happened. âNot yet. I hope itâs okay if I raid your cupboards for some cereal.â
âYou will not have cereal when Iâm almost done making a true breakfast.â
âOh, you spoil me too much.â
âNonsense. You deserve only the best.?â
I snapped back to reality, still feeling the warmth of Danielle in my arms, and looked back to see a small, carry-on suitcase resting in the open doorframe. I pulled it inside and shut the door before following them to the kitchen.
My sister had returned to her self-appointed post, twisting and turning across the tile floor as she managed half a dozen things at onceâshe looked like a contestant in some extreme cooking show. I just kept my distance on the other side of the counter. It may have looked like she was drowning in her process, but in her own words, everyone else just got in her way.
âNeed a hand?â Danielle asked with a smile.
âNope, you are not to lift a finger.â
âOh please, I can help.â
She turned around with an exasperated look. âDanielle, I will not let you do any work as a beloved guest in our house.â
âCome on.â Danielle grinned. âI want to help. We can take care of the eggs, at the very least. That way, you can make sure the other things donât burn.â
âFine. But donât you dare try to help with the dishes!â
âUnderstood.â Danielle laughed.
What the fuck? Every time I ever tried to help with anything, she would practically tear my throat out, push me away, and then complain that I never did anything around the house. Yet somehow, with just a few simple words, Danielle managed to convince her to relinquish her iron chains.
I needed to take notes.
Danielle certainly got comfortable despite doing something as innocuous. She stood as close as she possibly could. Her body was pressed up into my side, which sent a frustratingly confusing shudder through my core. She was taking adorable little glances up into my eyes, and giggling every time I awkwardly looked away.
Take the leap.
Danielleâs words echoed through my mind. I instinctively knew that she wouldnât mind if I did take a step up, since she was so... blunt, previously. I bit the inside of my cheek hard enough to draw blood. I wasnât quite sure, but I swore that I could see Danielleâs eyes sparkle when I wrapped an arm around her waist.
What was I doing? Feeling her pressed up against my side was doing terrible things to my heart. I wanted nothing more than to stay like that forever. Danielle felt so wonderful and soft. Not to mention, knowing that it was her I was pulling closeâthat was the forbidden cherry on top.
Despite the strain growing in my chest, I kept my hand curled around the side of her slender stomach. I even managed an awkward smile when Danielle swiped a butter-covered thumb on the tip of my nose.
I wanted to do it. I wanted it so badly that I could barely breathe. Her lips looked so invitingâlike soft little pillows framing a smile that couldnât have been more perfect. Resisting the urge to lean in for that wicked kiss made it feel like something in my chest was under tension so high it would snap.
How did I let this happen? Just yesterday I promised myself that I wouldnât let her hurt me again. I wouldnât let Danielle burrow her way into my chest and carve another hole that took years to heal.
Yet, at what was literally the very first opportunity for failure. So much for my willpower to resist the charm of a succubus. I knew this would only end in flames. The moment this act ended; I would be left with a vicious wound in the shape of her.
Despite that, I couldnât bring myself to care about the consequences yet. That was something I would just have to deal with later. The glint in Danielleâs beautiful brown eyes was far too intoxicating.
I didnât let go of her until the three of us were sitting down to eat. Even then, Danielle shifted her chair adjacent to mine. We sat so close we were practically wearing each otherâs pants. Every time I caught a peek at my sister, she just gave a curious smile.
It only got more complicated from then on. Thankfully, she went upstairs to do her classic quadruple-check over every single thing she packed into her suitcase. Unfortunately, that left Danielle and I alone on the couch while we waited for our departure time. I desperately hoped that Danielle wouldnât fixate on this weekend. Thankfully she seemed to stay her normal self, even if she was cuddled up into my side. It was such a casual display of affection that it almost made my heart flutter more than our hug when she entered the house. Unlike the hug, this lasted so much longer. There was nothing stopping Danielle from nesting into me as we scrolled through Netflix for anything that piqued our interest. As I expected, we ended up in the horror section.
âExhuma?â I asked.
âNah. Weâre only gonna be able to get through like half a movie before we have to go. I just want something I wonât really get invested in.â
âThe Conjuring?â
âThat movie literally only gets interesting right when we would have to leave.â
âFine. What would you like to watch?â
Danielle rolled her eyes. âI donât know! I already downloaded all three seasons of Sweet Home onto my laptop so we could watch it in the car and hotel. Got a headphone splitter and everything.â
âWe arenât in the car or hotel yet, so you need to pick something.â
âWhy do I need to pick? You have the remote.â
âYeah, and youâve already vetoed both of my suggestions. Youâre the only one being stingy here, so you choose what you want to watch.â
âOh jeez.â Danielle twisted her head up to glare at me. âIf you donât pick a movie, Iâm just gonna start making out with you in order to keep myself entertained.â
âIâuh, what?â
âWhat? You donât think that making out would be interesting? It looks like a lot of fun.â She grinned. âPlus, it would be a good way to convince your sister. She comes downstairs and Iâm sitting on your lap while weâre using each otherâs throats like straws.â
I could only tuck my chin with a blush, prompting a loud laugh from Danielle.
âRelax, I wonât. Unless you ask nicely, of course.â
âWhatâs so funny?â I heard my sister voice call out from around the corner of the living room, along with her approaching footsteps. Faster than I could react, Danielle grabbed both of my hands and pushed them into her sides just below her ribcage. She started twitching and giggling against me.
âStop, stop! Please!â
It took far too long for me to realise that Danielle just provided both of us with a perfect cover. Still, I plastered my own mischievous smile and started scratching and tickling away. Her fake spasms and noises quickly became real just before my sister stepped into view. I pretended not to notice her presence and held tightly onto the squirming girl while assaulting her sides with quick and playful fingers. My sister remained quiet for several moments and watched on. I took the opportunity to really dig in and double down on my efforts. What were once gentle pushes to try and get me to stop my tickling quickly became genuine actions of desperation. Danielleâs years of cheerleader made it difficult to get any good grip on her. Still, her breathing became ragged and strained as her face turned bright red. Tears were even streaming down her face.
âYou two having fun?â my sister finally spoke, and I lifted my head to meet her gaze. Beneath me, I could see Danielle do the same. I never stopped tickling, and she never stopped fighting.
âAhh Help!â
âHey, let her go.â
I ceased my assault and lifted my hands in surrender. Danielle used the opportunity to scramble away on the couch. She drew several heaving breaths before leaning forward and punching me in the shoulder.
âOw! Whatâs that for?â
âDummy! You know Iâm ticklish.â
I didnât, actually.
âYou two better not be acting up in the car. Traffic on the highway is already going to be bad enough, I donât need more distractions.â
Danielle gave a smile that could make a corpse blush. âDonât worry noona. Unlike him, I can keep my hands to myself.â
âUh huh.â Was her response.
âAre we leaving soon, or...â I had to break the silence.
âRelax, itâs only ten. We still have another hour before we need to leave. Do you mind if I sit here with you while we find something to watch?â
âNot at all. Sit down and relax all you like.â
Danielle giggled sweetly. âNowâyou tickle me one more time and you donât get any more cuddles.â
Before I could respond, she crawled back into her original position. If anything, she nuzzled up into my side even more than before. Most of her weight was on me, and her head was resting in the crook of my neck. Her hair was so soft. The smell of strawberries was almost overpowering. She grabbed my arm and curled it around her so that my hand was resting on her stomach. Her shirt had even ridden up slightly, allowing my pinky to sit upon the bare skin just below her belly button.
âYouâve decided what weâre gonna watch, right sweetie?â
I swear Iâm gonna shoot her. After I shot myself, of course.
âUh, yeah. Exhuma.â
My sister sighed. âJust know that weâre going to be leaving in an hour.â
âThatâs okay.â Danielle smiled. âI prefer the first half anyway. That partâs more interesting.â
-
Thankfully, the car ride was a lot less traumatic. I was worried that spending a few hours in an enclosed space with both Danielle and my sister would be the end of the world. It seemed as though Danielle decided to throw me a bone and play nice for the first time in her life.
I simply focused on trying to enjoy the show. It was significantly harder than it had any right to be, because of the way she held my hand over the dividing cupholder in between us. For the entire ride. As in, the entire ride. From the instant that our doors closed to the moment we parked outside the hotel, she did not let go of my hand once. If she switched the laptop to the next episode, took a sip of her drink or grabbed a snack, she always used her right hand since her left was firmly grasping mine. I could only imagine how gross it must have felt for her.
When we finally parked, both Danielle and I used our free hands to take off the headphones. She smiled at me and her eyes glittered like pools of melted chocolate. Granted, I had never looked particularly closely at her eyesâthat was probably to avoid the fluttering butterflies trapped in my stomach.
Even more so than when the two of us were buttering toast, the simple act of us holding hands and looking at each other made every single other sensation in the world fade away. Every neuron in my brain was firing warning signals, screaming at me to let go and turn away. To admit to that I was lying about the relationship. However, this ended would be way worse than if I just cut my losses and ran.
I leaned in and kissed her.
There was no word that could describe it. Perfect was too tacky. Amazing wasnât quite right. Wonderful just didnât do it the justice it deserved. What surprised me was just how simple it was. I never expected that kissing someone would be so... plain. There wasnât any feeling about it that was special. It was just like kissing the back of my hand, if a little bit softer. What made the act so unbelievable was simply the knowledge of who I was doing it with. Knowing that it was Danielle pressed up against my lips in what was arguably the most intimate of acts. My very first experience of the sort, and it was with none other than the best friend I had been in love with for longer than I could remember. The one person on the planet that I couldnât have under any circumstance. The one person who made it clear way back then that she wasnât interested. Sure, she was very obvious that she was willing to take this act as far as she needed to, but as for what happened next? There was no telling what kind of aftermath would be present when the dust settled.
The forbidden fruit never tasted so sweet.
âAhem.â
My sister cleared her throat from the front seat. I abruptly pulled away and opened my eyes. I watched Danielle do the same. Her irises flashed with something I had never seen before. For the first time in my life, I saw Danielle genuinely taken aback. She was uncertain. Just as quickly as it appeared, that shaken expression was wiped clean by her typical grin. Danielle leaned forward and returned her lips to mine. It was only for a moment, but that second kiss felt entirely different. With the first, I could tell that I had broken through whatever mask Danielle was wearing as part of this act. No doubt I had screwed all of this up. At least it was obvious that Danielle was going to hold out for the duration of the wedding. Unfortunately, I had no faith that things were going to be the same after this was all said and done.
Danielle flashed a pearly smile and let go of my hand. âCome on, letâs go.â
âIâll grab the bags.â I coughed. âHow about you two get us checked in and weâll meet by the elevator?â
With that, Danielle and my sister walked off. Danielle had her backpack and my sister her purse. Everything else was stuffed into the four suitcases in the trunk.
Five minutes later, I was awkwardly trying to shuffle the suitcases through the thin doorway while Danielle laughed and held the door open for me. Eventually squeezing our way inside the respective rooms. It was a very nice but simple room. Grey walls, two beds, a large TV and an attached bathroom. I hefted both of our bags onto one of the beds right before my sister appeared in the doorway.
âAlright, you two. Weâve got a dinner reservation at six, but we donât need to leave for another two and a half hours. I assume that you two just want to hang out at the hotel until then?â
âYeah.â Danielle answered for both of us. âWe had to pause the episode halfway through. We were probably just gonna chill and keep watching.â
âAlright, Iâm going to take a bit of a walk and see where everything is. Iâll be back before we need to leave for dinner.â
âHave fun.â I chirped.
âIf you need anything, just call.â
âI will, Go enjoy your walk.â I said then shut the door.
âDan, listenâabout earlier.â
âWhat about it?â
âI shouldnât have done that.â I shook my head.
âWhy not? Itâs all part of the act, right?â
âNoâ Yes, I mean...â I slumped down onto the bed and held my head in my hands. Danielle slowly walked forward and sat beside me. Her presence only made the feelings more complicated but I had to fight through it.
âYouâre my best friend, and I donât want to ruin what we have. I put us in this stupid position and Iâm sorry. Thatâwas too far.â
Danielle rolled her eyes. âIâve basically been screaming at you to take this far. I sent you nudes. I could feel your dick pressing into me for the entirety of breakfast. If weâre pretending to be a couple, I donât want to do it half way. Iâll fuck you right now if it makes you feel less awkward.â
âHey!â
âWhat? Why are you freaked out?â
âIâ itâs freaking me outâthat youâre not freaking out.â
Danielle giggled. âRelax. Everything's gonna be fine.â
âIs it not weird to you?â
âOf course, itâs weird!â Danielle punched me in the arm hard enough that I winced. âWeâve been best friends since kindergarten!â
My shoulders slumped in defeat. Danielle leaned into me. âBut being best friends means that we help each other with anything, no matter how weird it is. Granted, I figured that I would be helping you hide a body before I pretended to be your girlfriend.â
We sat there for several moments before Danielle twisted her head up and locked her eyes into mine. Sooner than I could do anything to resist, she pushed just a few inches vertically so that our lips met for the third time that morning. It wasnât as quick as the kiss that she initiated before, but not nearly as passionate as the one that I gave her. It was a slow, simple, and sweet connection that only lasted for a moment. When Danielle pulled back, she did so with a smile and a flush of red in her cheeks.
âJust because weâre pretending doesnât mean we canât enjoy it.â
âWhat about after the weekendâafter we get back?â
Danielle almost, almost seemed disappointed. âThatâs up to you. Itâs also up to you to decide what weâre doing next.â
âWhat?â I raised an eyebrow.
âYou have to decide if weâre gonna keep watching or if weâre gonna fuck.â
âOh Danielle.â
She laughed at my horrified embarrassmentâsomething that was happening far too often recently. âRed face, tucking in your chin, all signs are there. Like I said earlierâyou are way too awkward about this whole thing, and that wonât convince anyone. If you tense up or lose your composure, then one kiss wonât be enough to convince your sister.â
I tried to find words, but my efforts were nullified by Danielle grabbing the hem of her sweater and lifting it. I was foolish enough to think that she was just getting a little too warmâthat was until I saw the bare skin of her stomach get revealed as her shirt came with it.
âWhat are you doing?â
When she pulled both her shirt and hoodie off over her head, she shrugged. She was wearing a simple white bra but was already moving to unclasp the back.
âYouâve seen them before. Whatâs the big deal?â
She dropped her bra onto the bed, and I was greeted for the second time by the lovely sight of her shapely, supple breasts. This time was so much better because now they werenât on my phone screen. They were right in front of me, rising and falling with each of her gentle breaths. The red on her face only deepened.
âTouch them.â
âIâuh, um... you sââ
Danielle sighed, grabbed my hands, and yanked them onto her breasts. Much like the kiss earlier, there wasnât even really anything physically special about it. Her skin was deliciously soft and warm, like a smooth heated pillow. Her nipples pressed into my palms like rubbery little nubs. I could feel them getting harder under my touch. Really the only thing that made the act perfect was again, the thought of what it was and who I was doing it to. I had been kissing Danielle earlier, and now she was sitting topless beside me with my hands cupping her breasts. Tearing my gaze back up to her face, she was wearing the cockiest grin Iâd ever seen.
âIf this doesnât make you less awkward, then Iâm not sure if anything will. Do you like them?â
âUh, yeah?â My confidence was slowly returning with the faith that this wasnât going to completely crash and burn in front of my face. No amount of confidence was going to make my hands start moving. I held as still as a statue even as Danielle pulled her hands away and dropped them to her sides.
âTheyâre a little small, but I like them. Theyâre also not gonna break, so grow a pair and start squeezing.â
I gulped and nodded at her confirmation. I experimented with delicate, gentle probing from my fingers. The skin was soft and pliable under my touchâbending in the perfect way as it conformed to the new shape. Danielle sighed and smiled. I was locked there for several moments, unable to do anything but play with my friendâs boobs. She was probably looking at me. My gaze was fixed downwards.
âAlright,â said Danielle, âthatâs enough.â
She stood up, pulling my hands from her chest. Before I could even begin to stammer, she reached down and worked at the button on her jeans.
âTake off your shirt.â
âUh...â was all I could manage. Danielle finished with the button but made no further move towards lowering her pants. Instead, she crossed her arms over her chest like she was waiting for something. Since the act had a double effect of hiding her breasts from view, it helped me come back to reality. Kind of.
âTake off your shirt, or Iâll put mine back on. Your choice.â
Why did this feel like a trap? Surely this was some kind of test, yet there was no way I wasnât falling for the bait. I slowly reached my hands to the collar of my shirt and tugged to slide it off over my head. Danielle smiled. She lowered her hands, once again baring her breasts. Her thumbs hooked into the waistband of her denim. She wasted no time before sliding her jeans down. Even as she bent over to push them off all the way, her soft eyes never left mine.
When she stood back up straight, she was left only in a pair of simple white panties. As expected from a girl who did several years of cheerleader, her legs were fantastic. Shapely and toned, the pale skin was perfectly smooth all the way from her thick thighs to her dainty toes.
âSame deal as before. Take off your pants and mine stay off, too.â
I was a bit more hesitant this time, but again, the bait was too good to resist. Soon, my jeans were cast to the side just like Danielleâs. Her eyes flicked down towards the fabric tented by my erection and she smiled.
âNow lie back against the headboard.â
I was confused, but didnât dare ignore her instructions. I shifted from sitting on the edge of the bed to sitting against the wooden headboard, only taking a moment to move the pillows out of the way. Danielle turned around and grabbed something off of the other bed. My eyebrows raised even more when she walked back over while holding her laptop and our headphones.
âScooch over, make some room.â
I did as she asked, and Danielle slid in beside me. She handed me the laptop for just a moment while she undid the blankets from their tightly made position and slid her bare legs underneath. She adjusted her pillow so that she was sitting up against it, slid right up into my side, and took the laptop again. I was so entranced by the way her mostly nude body felt up against mine and the way her small breasts jiggled with each small movement that I didnât even notice she had opened up the paused episode until she was handing me my headphones.
âWeâre gonna cuddle in our underwear and keep watching until itâs time for dinner, yeah?â
It wasnât phrased like a question. It was a command that I hastily accepted. Danielle grinned, put on her headphones, and pressed âplayâ. I did the same but didnât even have a chance to ponder where I should put my hands. Danielle decided that for me, too.
She grabbed my left arm and wrapped it around her back before placing my hand directly on her breast. When I hesitated, she chuckled and paused the episode mere moments after it started playing. Danielle turned her head towards me, grinned, and gave me a quick kiss that seemed laced with whatever devilish magic she possessed. I could barely even think when she pulled back and stared me in the eyes.
âUntil the end of this weekend, I am your girlfriend. No pretending. No acts. If we keep being awkward, then this weekend will only end up as a nightmare for both of us.â
âYouâ donât want to pretend?â
Danielle smirked, âIf we were just pretending, then we wouldnât be cuddling in our underwear. As far as I see it, this serves two purposes. One, it might just get you a little bit more comfortable with me. If you turn into a mannequin everytime I hold your hand, your sister is gonna see right through it. Two, it just makes this whole thing a lot simpler. I donât have to worry about acting like your girlfriend whenever your sister is around if I am your girlfriend for this weekend. Screw the act. Weâll figure the rest of this out when we get back home. For now, letâs just do this and worry about making it through the next forty-eight hours.â
âIâ uh, okay?â
âGood. Now remember when I said it feels nice having my tits played with?â Danielle winked
I took the hint. My fingers gently probed and massaged at the delightfully soft flesh like it was a warm stress ball. That was, if the stress ball had a steel ball bearing nipple on the front and a heartbeat from underneath that pounded almost as fast as mine. Danielle turned her gaze back towards the laptop, let out a content sigh, and settled into my side before pressing âplayâ for the final time.
Oh, what had I gotten myself into?
-
Aside from a quick scramble to put back on our shirts when we heard my sister knock on the door, nothing of note happened all the way up until dinner. Well, I scrambled. I slipped my shirt and jeans back on as fast as I could. Danielle took her sweet time. I was ninety percent sure that my sister could see Danielle putting her bra back on through the open doorway. I wasnât sure how to feel about that; on one hand, it was almost as embarrassing as my sister seeing her naked photos yesterday. On the other, it may have actively helped push the narrative that we were dating. After all, if we were only pretending to date, then why would we be rushing to put our clothes back on?
I only hoped that my sister didnât notice the erection tenting my jeans. I knew Danielle saw it underneath the blanket the entire time we were watching, but surprisingly, she never acknowledged it. Her eyes would occasionally flick over, but nothing more. No scathing remarks, no witty jokes at my expense. She just left me alone, other than ensuring my hand continued to play with her breast throughout our session.
And oh boy, was that an experience. If it wasnât for that, I might have actually gotten somewhat accustomed to the circumstance and let my arousal diminish. Yet every time my hand faltered even slightly; Danielle brought hers up to coax me into a continued tit massage. By the time that my sister knocked on the door, my dick was throbbing. It was even harder than the nipple drilling a hole into my palm. Based on the way that Danielle would occasionally shift ever-so-slightly, I could safely assume she was probably as turned on as I was.
Still, she never did a single thing more.
She was my girlfriend for the weekend. What the hell was that supposed to mean? Did she genuinely despise the thought of us, but was going full-tilt on the act in a hope that it made it easier to deal with? I just despised the idea of forcing my best friend into a situation she didnât want to be in.
However, she seemed to be genuinely enjoying some aspects of this, which only served to confuse me even more. If she was so uncomfortable with us acting like a couple, then why did her eyes sparkle so much when she kissed me before we got in the car? Why did she once again insist on holding my hand for the entire ride to the restaurant? Why did she sit so close to me in the booth and rest her head on my shoulder?
âJust because weâre not actually dating doesnât mean we canât have some fun.â
âWhat about after the weekendâafter we get back?â
âThatâs up to you.â
Those words rattled around in my head like a handful of nails in a glass jar. They mixed with the ones from yesterday saying almost the exact same thing. Take the leap. Every image of Danielle frowning when I didnât reciprocate her actions. Every time she smiled brightly when she took another step in our pretend relationship.
It wasnât fair. I couldnât even enjoy my burger. I was too busy trying not to let my inner turmoil show on my face. Well, that and fighting off Danielleâs constant attempts to steal my fries. The only thing that helped to alleviate the tension in my chest happened after dinner. The four of us walked from the restaurant to the falls, which were barely two blocks away.
As expected, Cheonjiyeon waterfalls were stunning. Under the darkening sky, they would have been harder to truly appreciateâif it werenât for the coloured spotlights that illuminated every inch of the natural wonder. Reds, blues, oranges, greens, purples, yellows, and every other colour I could imagine was glittering through the rushing water and mist to create a shimmering rainbow curtain. One of my hands was held onto the steel railing at the edge of the observation deck. The other was also on the railing, but my fingers were intertwined with Danielleâs. Thankfully, the falls didnât seem to be too busy tonight which left plenty of room for us to spread out and have a small semblance of privacy.
âI wasnât expecting much, but that is gorgeous,â Danielle said. My response was automaticâleaking from my lips faster than I could catch it and clamp down.
âNot as much as you.â
Danielle twisted her head to look at me with a raised eyebrow. I could see myself wince in the reflection of her doe-like eyes.
âIâm sorry, was that supposed to be a pick-up line?â
I had to quickly weigh the pros and cons of both possible answers before selecting one. âYes?â
Danielle grinned. âSo cheesy, but Iâll give you some points for effort. C minus.â
âOnly a C?â
âC minus,â she corrected.
âIâd like to see you do better.â I immediately discovered my mistake when Danielleâs grin softened until her lips were just barely touching each other. She let go of my hand and raised her fingers to trace gently against my cheek. Once she cupped my face in her hand, she pulled me in. There was no tongue action, no lip biting, or anything else that I figured would be present in a make out session, but this also was not one of the few chaste kisses we had shared throughout the day. Instead, this one was identical to the one I gave her in the car before we entered the hotel in every way except one; this time, she was the initiator.
It was a long, slow, passionate, and powerful connection that made me feel as if I was moments away from total heart failure. I didnât even notice that we turned to face each other until my hands were on her hips. The kiss was eventually broken by Danielle pulling her lips back a fraction of a centimetre. While our foreheads were still touching, and her hand still on my cheek, I watched her big, beautiful brown eyes blink twice.
âI canât seem to find my bed anywhere. Can I share yours tonight?â
âIâ uh...â
âScore.â She wrapped both arms around my neck with a quiet laugh. I could feel her breath on my faceâsoft, warm, and smelling faintly of her dinner. âThatâs how itâs done.â
âYou cheated.â
âWhy, because I kissed you?â
âYeah.â
âWhat are you gonna do about it? Spank me for being a bad girl?â She lifted the corner of her lip in a cocky challenge. I shook my head, keeping our foreheads pressed together.
âNah. Iâll just have to cheat, too.â
Our lips met once more, but something told me that I ended up playing right into Danielleâs hands. Perhaps it was the way her arms tightened around my neck to pull our mouths together. It might have been the way she stepped into me so that her chest was pressed into mine. Or it might have been the fact that I could feel her smiling against my lips when I wrapped my hands around her waist. When she tapped her tongue against our connection, that made her earlier words crystal clear.
Until the end of this weekend, I am your girlfriend.
I realized she wasnât lying. For all intents and purposes, Danielle was my legitimate girlfriend for the next forty-eight hours. When it inevitably changed things between us, good or bad, it would happen after we got back. I wasnât entirely sure how to feel about that. There was no coming back from something like this. Even if we somehow managed to stay friends, I donât think my heart would never be able to accept it.
Two days of guaranteed sunshine. Two days to experience the forbidden fruit before punishment or bliss. Two days was enough.
I opened my mouth and let my tongue meet hers. The evening November air was chilly, but there was no chance of it dimming the heat that pulsed between us. Inside of our locked lips, our tongues danced a moist duetâa challenge to see who would claim more of the other. For every centimetre I delved into Danielleâs mouth, she did the same with mine. The sensation was odd beyond words. Once again, it was special only for the knowledge of what it was and who I was doing it with. There was something deliciously naughty about licking the inside of someone elseâs mouthâsharing saliva and drinking their flavour. Danielle was almost taste like a lollipop, if you willâas I lavished in the taste of her mouth. I could even catch a hint whatever it was she had during dinner. It was clear that neither of us really knew the âproperâ way to use tongue while kissing, but neither of us cared.
I donât know how long we spent like thatâmaking out with the roaring falls as our backdrop. It might have just been seconds; it might have been minutes. It felt like hours, but also felt instantaneous. When Danielle pulled her tongue from the front lines of the battlefield, her lips only lingered for a moment upon mine before breaking free. When my eyes opened, they were greeted by the rolling waves of brown mixed with sparkles that stared back at me. We were both panting, holding each other so close that we may as well have been inside of each otherâs hoodies. The smile on her face and red flushing her cheeks almost made it look like she was drunk. I didnât forget my promise, though.
âYou must be one hell of a thief, because you stole my heart right from my chest.â
I grinned. She groaned. âGod, that was worse than the first one.â
âDo I get extra points for that?â
â... B plus.â
âIâll take it.â
-
The walk back to the car was silent aside from the general noise of the city. Danielle was leaning her head on my shoulder with a giddy smile on her lips. The car ride was equally silent. There was simply nothing to be said. Not for the walk back into the hotel lobby. Not during the elevator ride up to the fourth floor. Not during the short stroll down the hall to our rooms. The quiet was only broken when I was tapping the key card against the lock to the room.
âIâll come over a quarter after eight to help Danielle with her dress and makeup, so make sure you two are up, showered, and ready by then.â
I nodded. âI already have my alarm set for seven. Donât worry.â
When I shut the door behind us and turned around, Danielle had already kicked off her shoes and was pulling off her hoodie. Her shirt rode up a little in the process to show off her perfect skin, but that didnât matter since it was the next article of clothing to go. I nudged my own shoes off, slipped out of my sweater, and emptied the contents of my pockets onto the nightstand as Danielle did the same.
âWhat now?â
Danielle looked up from where she was undoing the button on her pants. âWeâre gonna put on our pajamas, get into bed, and keep watching our show until we pass out.â
âWe?â I gave a grin that Danielle matched and then some.
âI wasnât asking. Youâre a very comfortable pillow, after all.â
âSounds like a good plan.â
Danielle pushed down her pants, once again revealing her long, athletic legs. Noticing how I was staring, Danielle chuckled and tossed her jeans at me. I feigned surprise.
âWhat was that for?â
âIâm just trying to get changed into something more comfortable and youâre standing there ogling me, you pervert.â She was smirking with every word.
âCan you blame me?â
With precision, Danielle reached behind herself and unclasped her bra. Despite having literally fondled them for almost two hours earlier, I felt a vein in my forehead pulse at the sight of her beautiful breasts.
âNah, I know Iâm hot. Just know that this show is only temporary.â
Danielle tossed her bra onto the other bed and reached down to the waistline of her panties. My eyes went wide at the implication. Danielle simply grinned and teased the hem of the fabric with her fingers for a few moments. Cloth was lowered millimetre by lustful millimetre. I had already seen the delicate present underneath through the pictures she had sent yesterday, but there was no hope of me not being enraptured by the sight.
âAre you really not going to give me any privacy?â The question leaked out through her pearly teeth. A part of me hesitated. The rest of me answered with a smirk.
âNope.â
Danielle rolled her eyes, turned around, and slid her fingers under the waistband before gently pulling it downwards. The fabric graciously revealed the flawless globes of her ass and I stopped breathing. Just like with her breasts, the real thing was so much better than a picture. Even so, the sight only got better as Danielle folded at the waist, bending over in a greatly exaggerated manner as she tugged her underwear down. Slowly. The way she was bent let me see the split of her flowery folds peeking out from her thighs as if it were giving me a friendly wave. It wagged side to side slightly as she lifted each leg a few inches to take off her socks. When she lifted back up, she did so with her panties and socks held in one outstretched hand before letting them drop onto the bed next to her bra.
âEnjoying yourself?â
âVery much.â
âHmph.â Danielle took a step closer to the storage bed and unzipped her suitcase. I took appreciation in every inch of her lovely naked body. The red in her cheeks was bright, but her smile was brighter. She pulled free a pair of white pajama pants and a black tank top. I drank deep in the sight for the few remaining seconds before Danielle stepped into her bottoms. When she pulled on the tank top, I could see the two-pointed tips of her nipples poking against the fabric. Then she looked up with a smile so wicked it sent a chill through my chest.
âYour turn. Get changed.â
Whatever confidence I had was gone. âUh, what?â
âYou got your show, now I get mine. Take it off. Nice and slow, please.â
If I had known I was walking right into a trap, I would have been much more cautious. Danielle sat down on the bed, crossed her legs, and waited. I gulped. My shirt was first, which was most of the way off my head before Danielle made a noise like a buzzer. âSlower, no need to rush.â
I paused; head still covered by the almost-free shirt. I could only give an audible, muffled sigh as I resumed at a slower pace. I dragged the fabric off entirely, leaving my chest When I grabbed a new shirt from my own suitcase, Danielle buzzed again.
âNuh-uh. All of it off, then you can get dressed.â
âAll of it?â
She grinned. âIf Iâm your girlfriend for this weekend, that also means youâre my boyfriend. Everything that I do for you, you do for me.â
There I was, stuck in the very middle of the trap she had set. There was only one way out. I set the shirt back down and undid the button on my jeans. We had cuddled while I was in nothing but my boxers earlier, but it was the thought of what came next that made my chest clench. I pulled down the denim, hesitating just enough to take them off at a moderate speed instead of fast. Thankfully, Danielle didnât interject. She didnât say anything when I took off my socks, either. Unfortunately, she just raised her eyebrows at me when I looked back at her.
âKeep going.â
The face of that double-standard was rearing its ugly head. It was lovely to see Danielleâs extra-special bits. Now that I had to show her mine? Any hint of an erection that may have begun forming at Danielleâs strip show had faded. Still, I had one way forward. I grabbed the hem of my boxers, looked Danielle in the eyes, and tugged them to my ankles. When I stood up, I had to force my hands to my side so that they werenât covering my manhood.
âLovely.â said Danielle.
Somehow, I managed a weak smile of my own, then grabbed a pair of grey pajama pants from my own suitcase. I didnât go commando very often, even if I was sleeping, but the circumstances made it obvious that tonight would be an exception of Danielleâs choosing. When the bottoms were pulled back up around my hips, I still felt oddly vulnerable. Just the way Danielleâs eyes occasionally flicked down as I pulled on a shirt let me know that she approved. When I was clothed again, she shifted across the mattress and rested her back against the headrest in a position almost identical to how she was earlier when we cuddled. Danielle, still with a cheeky grin, then went and patted the open spot next to her.
âJust a moment.â
I reached back into my suitcase, grabbed a long cord that was tucked underneath everything else, then walked over to the large TV.
âI brought a connector specifically for this. We can watch on the big screen and just have the laptop on the nightstand.â
âAnd you didnât bring this up before dinner... why?â
I gave the most exasperated glance to Danielle that I could manage. âIâm sure you can understand that I was a little bit distracted earlier.â
âI couldnât imagine why.â
âHa ha. Plug that in.â
I walked back to the bed, passed Danielle the other end of the connection cord, and grabbed the remote. It took no more than two minutes to get everything set up properly. By the time Danielle hit âplayâ she was already snuggled into my side, and my arm was wrapped around her waist. Unlike before, my hand was not clasped onto her breast. Now, it just resided on the side of her stomach. It was intimate in a way that was entirely innocent F just holding her close for no reason other than to enjoy her company.
Danielle rubbed her hand across my stomach. Butterflies fluttered around her fingertips.
âI think youâd look cute in a dress.â
âI better, because Iâd be walking down the aisle like a model,â I said.
Danielle smiled then lifted her head. She only glanced at my lips for a moment before moving in. I met her halfway. When we finally pulled apart, Danielleâs eyes were distant.
âWhatâs wrong?â
She shook her head for a moment, hesitated, then sighed in defeated acceptance. âIâm horny.â
âI beg your pardon?â
Danielle rolled her eyes and gave a red-faced smile. âHey, if you had your tit being played with for two hours and then had to leave for dinner, youâd be pretty uncomfortable too.â
âDonât forget that it was your idea. I was the one playing with it anyway, so let it be known you werenât alone in your discomfort.â
Once again, Danielle hesitated. That in of itself was a spectacle to witness. She was always so confident, so having her visibly figure out her own thoughts was almost concerning. Even the way she fought to meet my eyes was adorable.
âDo you want to fix that?â
Just the way she asked, that sent shivers down my spine. Before I could provide an answer, Danielleâs hand, the one resting on my stomach, drifted downward. Her pinky touched the waistband of my pajama pants and stopped. Whether she was asking permission or building up courage, I would probably never know. Regardless, the shortness in my breath meant that I couldnât stop her even if I wanted to.
Danielle gently slid her fingers underneath the stretchy waistband, allowing her skin to vanish from sight. From that point, I could only feel her creeping closer, millimetre by millimetre, fingernails lightly dragging against my pelvis. I wasnât sure if it was a good sign or not that she seemed to stop hesitating. Her fingers traced over my rapidly-hardening member. They were so soft and warm, like my friend down below was getting a lovely hug as she wrapped her fingers around it.
âSomeoneâs waking up.â Even her confident smile had returned.
Whatever that brief moment of vulnerability was, it was gone. Maybe she was expecting me to crumble under her assault. Maybe she was expecting an attempt at a witty comeback. Based on the way she gasped lightly, I donât think she was entirely prepared for me to lift my own hand and place it directly atop her pelvic bone. Her skin was hot to the touch, even through her pajamas.
She didnât say anything. She didnât need to. The flutter in her eyes and the way she gave a slow, tentative stroke to my shaft spoke for her. I pulled my fingers back and dug them under the waistband. My chest tightened at the feel of her sweltering skin. I could tell that had it not been for the very light pubic stubble, it would have been smoother than glass.
Danielleâs grip around me slowly tightened as my fingers approached the prize. When I slid my middle finger down the split of her sex, both of us let out a shaky breath. She wasnât kidding that she was horny. She was soaked. Running a finger across her sopping, swollen foldsâmy digit would be drier if I dunked it in a glass of water. I felt my lower appendage pulse in Danielleâs hand, and I know she felt it too. Just knowing how unreasonably aroused she was eradicated any hope of not being at full mast.
When we locked eyes again, that was when we started moving. Danielle focused on keeping a gentle but firm grip as she eased into a slow, leisurely pace. I matched her own speed while dragging a pair of fingers across the surface of her lower lips. I was given all the permission I needed the moment Danielle shifted her hips upwards just slightly, pressing my hand into her.
âWeâungh, we should take off our pants so we donât ruin them.â
âThatâs an idea.â
I could feel both of our hesitations when it came to removing our hands from the otherâs genitals, but I relinquished my gentle cupping of her delicate when she retracted her hand from mine. Danielle instantly moved her hands to the waistband of her pajamas to begin pulling them down. I rested a hand on top of hers to stop her. She looked confused for only a moment. That confused faded the second that I sat up from the headboard, swivelled around the bed, and planted myself right beside her legs while locking eyes.
Even when my hands replaced hers and began tugging down the fabric. The sheer eroticism of slowly, slowly pulling down someone elseâs pants while staring into their lust-addled eyes was mystifying. I could never have been more aroused in my life.
Not even when Danielle lifted her legs up, bringing her knees closer to her chest so I could pull the pajamas off further. Not even when the cloth was finally free from her dainty toes and her lower half was left bare. Not even when her succulent, smooth legs parted to either side so that I was kneeling before the prize so brazenly displayed to me.
It was beautiful. Almost as red as the flush in her cheeks, and just shy of being as pretty as the girl it was attached to. The arousal was extremely obvious. I could see that arousal dripping onto the bedsheets. Fleshy folds were almost throbbing outwards, opening up her core like a meaty flower. This time, I could both watch and feel her entire body shiver when I returned one hand atop her lovely mound.
I probably should have been focusing on the task at hand. I should have had my gaze fixated on her sopping slit during my task of bringing my friend to orgasm. I couldnât. For some reason, the instant that my hand was in the correct place atop her bare pussy, my eyes moved back upwards to stare at her face. I could see her staring right back. Her mouth was slightly agape, twitching occasionally in pleasure or letting out little moans as my fingers began to experiment.
I didnât know what I was doing. As much as my goal was to pleasure Danielle, an equal part was seeking to learn. To learn in what way I could make her move. When I dragged my middle finger down the entire length of her slit, she shuddered. Spreading her folds with my thumb and pinky made the lips on her face part in a similar fashion. I traced my fingers along the edge of the entrance until I reached a defined nub near the top of her mound.
Danielleâs legs twitched inwards to close around either side of my body and a gasp was torn into her lungs. Despite all of that, our eyes never left each otherâs. Fudge and blueberries that glittered through a haze of arousal. I opted to ignore her clit for nowâI knew that it could often be too sensitive, at the very least.
Instead, the fingers that were probing around the edge of her entrance decided to begin their delving expedition. A heavy, ragged breath shuddered from Danielleâs lips when my index and middle finger slipped down to the second knuckle. I had been planning on taking it relatively slow and only going to my first knuckle, but the way that her hips bucked downwards into me caused my hand to go deeper. Given that knowledge, I went for broke and slid them the rest of the way in.
I held still for several moments. Part of it was to let her get accustomed to my fingers being inside of her precious vault. The rest of it was so I could get accustomed to it. She was squeezing me from all directions like a warm, fleshy, tight hug around my fingers. Once again, the naughtiness of the action was made relevant simply by the knowledge that my fingers were inside of my best friend.
My best friend, who could offer no words while gazing into my eyes. All she could do was nod for me to start moving.
I pulled my hand back until I could see the base of my fingernails before slowly sending it forward again as far as it could go. My unused fingers were curled against my palm, pressed in between my own skin and the silken wetness of Danielleâs pussy when I hilted against her a second time. And then a third. And a fourth.
I began a moderate but firm pace as I sawed to and for inside of my friend. I was thankful for her lustful grunts and moans; they were confirmation that I was doing an adequate job. Well, that and the fact that her legs were instinctively trying to clamp closed every time she twitched. All I could do was scooch myself forward and lean in so that my torso blocked her unintentional attempts to interrupt my administrations. Her legs were practically resting on my shoulders when I brought my other, unused hand up and started rubbing it along the outside of her thigh.
Danielleâs own hands were not left alone either. In my peripherals, I could see that one of them was now clamped overtop her shirt and was groping roughly at her breasts. I couldnât see the other, but I could certainly feel it brush against my own as she started to rub her exposed folds. I wasnât even going to try and pretend that I knew all the best ways to bring about pleasure to a woman, so her assistance was appreciated. After all, who would know how to best bring Danielle to orgasm than herself? She would know where to touch, where to prod, what speed to move, and how hard to press. All I could do was keep my fingers thrusting in and out of her snatch as a stimulating medium while Danielle did everything she needed to. Still, I just wanted to make sure.
âWhat do you need me to do?â
Danielle almost sounded like she was choking on her tongue as she spit out a response. âBoobs! Pl- hnngh- please!â
That was everything I needed. My hand resting on her thigh instead moved forward. I had to lean in a little bit further so that I could reach her free breast. I was about to begin fondling her through her tank top like she was doing already, but Danielle paused for a brief moment to pull the hem of her shirt up to her armpits. Once her tits were revealed, Danielle continued to roughly grope at herself.
She was already breathing heavily, chest heaving and flushed with red, while the rest of her body was shuddering against me. If that didnât mean she was close, then nothing would. I just kept my eyes locked onto hers while I firmly pressed my free hand into her breast and began squeezing with far more intensity than when we were cuddling before. Danielle squealed when I pressed my thumb into her nippleâa squeal that turned into a throaty, guttural groan as I moved it almost like a joystick.
For many blissful seconds, Danielle and I were locked in our embrace. One hand each on one of her breasts, and our other both crowding for space at her desperate flower. Her legs up on my shoulders, and both our eyes locked by ethereal chains of lust onto the otherâs.
It was nothing short of beautiful to watch Danielle crest the peak of pleasure. Sure, she broke eye contact, but that was because her head pressed back against the headboard and tilted to the ceiling as she gave a loud, strained cry. That just meant that my own gaze was now free to look over the many aspects of her orgasm and how it affected her perfect body.
Her chest turned a shade of scarlet that I wasnât even sure was possible with caramel skin like hers. The delicate hand on her breast was clenched with such visible tightness I thought she was going to rip her own nipple right off. The other pressing against mine for space in her sodden sex was bearing down on her clit, and I could feel her lock her ankles together behind my back. Through it all, her body shook and quivered like a waterbed in an earthquake.
Her orgasm seemed to go on for hours, but it was probably only a handful of seconds. I didnât dare to stop moving. My hands only faltered when the hand violating her clit twisted around and clamped onto my wrist to hold still and stop my continued thrusting. Her face was still pointed towards the ceiling for many more long, strenuous breaths before her gaze finally tilted downwards to meet mine.
Her hair was a ragged mess, dangling around her pretty face. Her cheeks were bright red, and there was even a line of moisture leaking down her chin from where she might have been drooling.
She had never been more beautiful.
The post-orgasmic panting lasted for a few moments longer before I started to see the edges of her lips curl upwards. In less time than it took to blink, a full smile was plastered from cheek to cheek and Danielle was starting to giggle. I couldnât help it. A grin broke onto my own face and I joined in her chuckling.
âThat was âwow!â Danielle breathed. âThatâs so much better with someone else helping me!â
Wait, did that meanâŚ
I didnât get a chance to finish comprehending the thought before Danielle let go of my wrist, unlocked her legs from my back, and spread her legs to drop them back to the bed. âAlright, Your turn.â
âUh, what?â
âYou help me, and Iâll help you. Now swap places.â
Right. I guess the original plan was to bring each other to completion, and then I got a bit carried away. Frankly, I had forgotten all about myself during that entire sequence. It was just too much fun to play with Danielleâs special bits.
I could only nod meekly and swallow as the two of us pivoted around each other. When my back was up against the headboard the same way Danielle had been moments before, I felt Danielleâs hands tugging at the waistband of my pajamas. All I could do was lift my hips and let her strip me. Only when my pants were off and my erection was standing proud and swollen did Danielle move in between my legs. I was caught off guard when she didnât keep a position on her knees like I did.
Instead, Danielle sat right on the bed and wrapped her legs overtop mine. That not only served as a way to keep my own legs open, but spread her own at the same time to give me a lovely view of her flower once more. A view that lasted a mere moment before she scooched forwards until our nethers pressed into each other.
Oh god.
I could feel Danielleâs lower lips kissing up against my balls while my shaft pulsed against her stomach. This position was so much more intimate than what I had taken. When Danielle wrapped one hand around my shaft and began stroking slowly, my mouth went dry. Her fingers felt indescribable clutching to my erection. She slid from the very base all the way to the tip, lingering for a moment before going all the way back down to repeat the process. It was not a long distance for her hand to travel, but every inch felt amazing regardless.
Until she released me suddenly. However, I didnât dare to question what Danielle was doing, especially not when she squeezed her hand into the gap between our nethers. Her knuckles were brushing up against my balls, and it took me far longer than it should have to realise what it was that she was doing. It was only when she stopped fingering herself and brought her hand back up to clasp around my member when I finally fit the pieces together.
Danielle was going to jerk me off using her own juices as lube.
The amount of blood that rushed to my cock left me light-headed. I felt like I was going to burst. She probably wouldnât have even needed to lubricate herself, since precum was all but drooling from me at that point. Still, every time her hand glided across my skin towards the head, she swept a thumb across the tip to gather my fluid and add it to the glistening sheen now covering my member. I was transfixedâwatching her hand move up and down while her other was braced behind her on the bed.
âHey, eyes up here.â
I reactively glanced from Danielleâs scolding, and fell right into the trap. It was then that I realised what she wanted. I had maintained eye contact with her for the entire time I brought her to climax, and it seemed she wanted to do the same with me. I also realised that it was an entirely different sensation to be on the receiving end. To stare so deeply into Danielleâs soul while feeling her hand stroke my throbbing shaft was indescribable. She wore her classic grin, maintaining our staring contest even while she leaned back slightly and pressed her mound even further into my crotch.
And she kept going. One hand braced on the bed, one hand rapidly increasing the pace as it worked to hell out of me, and even her pelvis began to grind up across the base of my cock. I could feel her sodden lips drooling against me as she half-scissored-half-masturbated me. I didnât know what to do with my hands. I resorted to clutching onto her calves, holding on like a fucking lifeline as Danielle went about her business.
There wasnât a snowballâs chance in hell that I could last like that. I doubt I even made it half the time that Danielle did under my administrations. In fact, I had a feeling I didnât break a minute. I couldnât even accuse Danielle of âcheatingâ. All I could do was groan and look ahead in the beautiful prison of her eyes while my entire abdomen clenched around my orgasm like a vice.
I felt like I was erupting. My cock throbbed once, twice, and then every subsequent pulse brought with it a stream of sticky cream that sprayed against Danielleâs bare stomach. She kept stroking, kept grinding, and kept staring. I could only pulse in her hand as spurt after spurt of cum plastered onto her skin. It was the best orgasm of my lifeâthat was for damned sure. Even after my balls felt like they were boiling and my shaft refused to spit out any more liquid, I continued to throb with the throes of my climax.
White lines were splattered across Danielleâs smooth stomach, pooling down into her cute little belly button. Her hand was covered in cum, making lewd noises and a slimy mess of my cock as she continued to slowly stroke up and down.
âFeel better?â
I struggled to find words. âOh... yeah. You?â
âMhmm.â She smiled. âNow I can definitely focus on the show.â
I noticed that when she rolled down her tank top back into position, she did so without bothering to do anything about the cum staining her stomach. I also noticed that when she crawled back into our cuddling position from before, she made no move to grab our pajama pants. Finally, I noticed that she was pressed up into my side even more so than usual, with one of her naked legs curled over mine.
Then she pressed âplayâ and the sounds of the show returned.
-
Waking up beside her was such a weird feeling; it didn't matter that butterflies were swarming my stomach the entire time we were cuddling once my eyes were closed; however, morning had arrived, and her eyes did not open until I shook her awake. Danielle slept through the alarm, she had never slept through her alarm.
-
I looked up as I heard the electronic lock click open and my sister walk back in, her makeup bag trailing behind her.
âThat was fast.â I said. My sister nodded.
âDanielleâs dress was simple enough as is, and with a face like hers, itâs really easy to put too much makeup. She has such a natural beauty that all you need is a few basics to help draw it out. You canât improve something thatâs already perfect.â
Of course, I didnât hear a single word that my sister had said. That was because the entire world went silent when Danielle walked through the doorway.
The first thing I noticed were her eyes, but that was a given. This morning, they had looked so conflicted. She kept her cocky grin, but I would catch more than a few glimpses. In my peripherals, when she thought I wasnât looking, her smile would fade. The glimmer in her eyes dimmed. She would look so distant. All of it just proved that last night was a mistake. Even though she was the one who initiated, I made the fuck-up and ruined everything. Like her analogy, she really was just finding the fastest and easiest way to eat the steaming shit that was this weekend.
Right now, there was zero hint of that trepidation. Her mahogany irises gleamed with confidence as they met mine with a smile. The corners of her eyes were accentuated just the tiniest amount with a shaded seam that solidified the line where it met the lightly darkened skin of her face. When she blinked, her eyelids were dusted in a way that made her cocoa tone a shade lighterâa visual disparity that only lasted a moment yet drew my gaze right back to her eyes when they reopened.
Somehow, her adorableness seemed to be even more prominent. The light pinkish hue adorned her cheeks, trailing down to lips that were just a single shade lighter than normal. In fact, the lipstick was so incredibly close to her own natural tone that I would never have been able to tell the difference if we hadnât spent so much time kissing yesterday.
Her hair was loose like it normally was, but the natural curls seemed less like she always has never bothered to manage. Now, her luscious locks swept around her face like an onyx curtain, framing the perfect picture until they came to rest just atop her shoulders. It was shaggy, like a wolf cut, but in such a defined and regal way that it could only have been done deliberately. I could faintly see a twinkling of metal through her hair. When black strands shifted, they revealed tiny earrings that were barely more than the studs she rarely wore, but these ones sparkled like diamonds.
Overall, she looked exactly the same, but just... more. Everything that I thought was beautiful about her, which was everything, was simply accentuated by that small amount. Nothing was covered. Nothing was hidden. It was just Danielle in every way that mattered but with an added air of perfection and formality that had not been present so far.
Her dress was one that I had never seen her wear before. That wasnât much of a surprise, since I had never seen Danielle wear any dress, period. Not even for prom. She had shown up in her hoodie and jeans, loaded a huge container to the brim with anything she could scrounge up from the buffet, stole one of the bottles of soda, then went home. She hadnât even bought a ticket. Not that I minded âI had been the one driving the getaway car.
Today though, Danielle was no longer adorned in her casual attire. Now it was a white dress that was plain to the eye, but no less phenomenal. It wrapped around her collarbone into a very, very shallow v-neck, with sleeves that went to her elbows. It was taught around her chest and stomach, past her waist, and all the way to the tops of her hips where it opened up just a little into a simple skirt that ended level with her knees.
The only particularly eye-catching parts of her outfit was an almost-wire-thin chain of silver hanging around her neck, perhaps an inch above the collar of her dress, off of which hung a small pendant shaped like a crescent moon. Partnered with that was a bracelet on her right wrist of an almost-identical design, but set with multiple dangling stars instead of a moon, each of which was glittering as they shifted in the light.
She had on a pair of small black socks, but it was not any form of dress shoes covering her feet. Instead, they were her normal, moderately-weathered, black canvas sneakers. Still, it didnât take anything away from the image of beauty in front of me. If anything, it only made sure to confirm that this was not a different person.
I didnât realise my jaw was on the floor until Danielle had walked forward and picked it up to stick it back in place.
âMake sure you get a good look, because Iâm never wearing this again.â She smirked through every word. My sister shook her head with a smile.
âIf that was the case, you could have at least worn heels.â said my sister.
âIâd rather step into the middle of an ant nest.â Danielle said.
Her face was beaming. She seemed so hesitant this morning, but I couldnât say anything. I didnât know what to say. I thought that having her be my âgirlfriendâ for two days would have been easy after our agreement, but last night threw a Danielle-sized wrench into everything. It wasnât even what we did to each other that made my heart so weakâit was just the memory of the way she looked at me. Obviously, what happened had affected her just as much, if not more. She had tried to play it off, and I was never good at reading her tells, but this morning was sloppy at best.
All of that was completely goneâwiped off the face of the planet. Her smiling, confident mask was back up in full force. I had absolutely no clue whether it was a good thing or not that I couldnât figure out what Danielle was thinking. I couldnât even tell if the way she leaned forward and kissed my chin was genuine, like our previous cuddling, or whether it was just a fabrication of the act. Danielle lifted either end of the tie dangling from my shoulders.
âI see you are going for a âbachelor partyâ lookâlike a secret agent.â
âOh, shut up.â
-
Fitting perfectly into my sister scheduled plan. The parking lot was almost empty, which none of us were surprised about. Still, there were a few cars, and only a couple more faces walking around the venue. Most of it was an outdoor garden of sorts that wrapped around a large central building that obviously served as a large-scale dining room. Almost everyone seemed to be outside at the moment, and my sister seemed to enjoy pointing out family members who were present and explaining who they were. She was talking to them mostly, but I made sure to listen in. It had been years since I last saw any of my extended family, and the chances of me remembering any more than a handful were damn near non-existent.
-
Every word echoed in the battle to try and understand her intentions. Every action or sentence leading me to believe she wanted this was drowned out by an equal number of statements implying the opposite. Danielle had never been a complicated person, but now, it felt different. We werenât alone. Anything she did now could just as easily be meant to upkeep the lie in front of everyone else. The only time I would be able to get even a hint of more information would be when we returned to the hotel room.
For now, I just had to made sure my heart could hold out for that long.
What made everything so much worse was the fact that it was almost normal. When the ceremony ended and the party continued, it no longer felt like I was trying to keep up an act. Everything just seemed like I was enjoying a very-formal-yet-equally-fun house party beside my best friend. The only difference, and the only thing making the entire situation a strain was the fact that Danielle never left my side for any reason other than to go to the washroom. She had her hand held in mine almost all the time, which prevented me from even attempting to pretend that she was just a friend. Every passing moment, her touch was dragging me further and further underwater. I was drowning.
In all seriousness, she was still easily noticeable. Not many of the women present were wearing white dresses like hers, and absolutely nobody else was sitting down at a table in the corner while using a butter knife to carve a penis into the side of a large candle. I didnât even need to see itâDanielle left unsupervised in a fancy place like this? She was probably going to start carving a vagina into the table next.
She smiled when I sat down beside her but did not stop her work.
âWow, thatâs quite generous with the length.â
âNot really.â
âIf heâs that long limp, how big do you think he gets when heâs hard?â
âHe is hard.â Danielle corrected. I could only wince.
âReally? With that kind of curve on it?â
âMhm.â She nodded.
She brushed a lock of hair behind one ear. Before she could turn her attention back to her elegant artwork, I leaned in. âCan I talk to you for a minute? Somewhere quieter?â
Her eyes practically twinkled. âOoh, pulling me away somewhere private? Weâll just need to be carefulâyour sister might get mad if we smudge my makeup.â
âI think sheâll be more upset at what Iâm gonna do to your dress.â I joked. âCome on.â
I led her by the hand outside of the building, back towards the swinging bench we had practically claimed earlier. Thankfully, there was still nobody here.
âYou know, I donât think the swing can survive if you rail me on it. Even if it does, can you imagine the splinters?â
âHa, ha.â I sat. Danielle followed suit, turning so that she was facing me with one leg crossed over the other. Her lips instantly curled into a smile when I leaned forward to press them against my own. It was a quick, chaste connection that lasted but a moment, followed by a second similar kiss, and then a third. The fourth lingered for a few seconds longer before we both pulled back just enough that we were breathing the same air. My chest was pounding, but I had to do this.
âDanielle, I canât do this anymore.â
The look on her face melted so quickly it almost shattered my heart. âWhat?â
âThis act.â I clarified quickly. âYou know I like you since forever.â
âOh, I know you do.â
âDanielle please, donât play dumb.â
âWhat are you trying to say?â
âWhat I mean⌠what if I say I want youâfor real?
She looked genuinely taken aback. Her response was silence. It lasted for several moments before a small voice leaked from her lips. âSo do I.â
âYou do?â
When she gave the tiniest nod, I swear my heart could have exploded. However, that feeling shrivelled when she spoke again. âI just donât know if we should.â
âWhat? Why?â
She sighed, which I knew was a sign that she was about to hit me with some cold, hard facts. âNine in ten relationships fail. If we try this and it doesnât work out...â
âI donât want that either, and thatâs also part of what I wanted to say. Iââ The words were surprisingly difficult to get out. ââI want to be in a real relationship with you, but I donât want it to replace what we had. I like having you as my best friend. I want you to stay as my best friend. I just want you to be my girlfriend at the same time.â
She was quiet for several moments. âI want that, too.â
âThen letâs go for it.â
âWhat if this doesnât work out. What if everything goes wrong and we break up?â
âWeâll keep it casual, a little kiss from a friend wouldnât hurt.â I shrugged.
Some of the glint returned to Danielleâs face alongside a subtle grin. âItâll be more than just kissing if this works out.â
Despite nothing having physically changed, this one was different in so many ways. It felt like pride and success. It tasted like relief and the slight hint of her lipstick. When her hand rose to cup my cheek, her fingers rested upon my skin with a tingle of passion that was previously hidden. My own hand resided on her waist, feeling her smooth, soft skin through the fabric of her dress. Both of our other hands still had their fingers intertwined with the other and resting in the space between us.
Danielle was leaning forward, scooching closer until she was all but sitting on my lap while the bench groaned its disagreement. We didnât listen. Our kissing remained at the surface level, mostly, but the entire demeanor was quickly shifting to become much hotter and heavier. I pulled back when I felt Danielleâs teeth gently but firmly close down on my bottom lip.
âAh, did you just bite me?â
âMaybe.â She grinned. âWhat are you gonna do about it?â
âOh, Iâll show you.â
I took the challenge and closed the distance between our faces. However, I didnât return my lips to hers. Instead, I kissed the edge of her mouth, then used soft, lingering pecks to trace a path down to her jawline. I continued towards her chin, then looped back around the other side where her jaw met her neck. Danielle breathed against me and moved her hair out of the way to make room for my smooches, which then trailed upwards. I had heard a lot about the ear being some kind of minor erogenous zone, so I went for it. I took it in between my teeth and gave a nibble. Danielle moaned and shivered against me.
Then the bench collapsed.
The creaking chain holding up my end of the bench, now having to support two people, came loose from wherever it was secured. Both Danielle and I were dumped onto the grass with all the grace. The armrest of the bench snapped in between the ground and my back, and both of our heads knocked together in a decidedly uncomfortable way until we came to rest with her laying on top of me.
Danielle lifted her head, expression widened in surprise. Her thick hair fell around the both of our faces, framing us like a curtain. It was just the two of us. I ignored the twinge of pain in the side of my head where we impacted against each other and smiled. Danielle did the same with a small chuckle before bringing her head down in yet another kiss. This one was soft, sweet, and gentleâlingering only for a few moments before she slowly lifted away again.
âWe should probably get up.â
âProbably.â I agreed.
She stood first and extended a hand down to help me up. When we were both situated, she started raking her fingers through her hair while I brushed grass off my suit. We both turned at the sound of someone clearing their throat behind us.
âDid I interrupt something?â my sister chuckled.
âNope. Just doing some improvised wrestling.â Danielle chirped.
âWhat about that?â My sister tilted her head towards the bench, hanging from one end while the other rested on the ground with the armrest broken in three pieces beside it.
âIt died from natural causes.â I said.
âWhat natural causes?â
Danielle and I looked at each other, looked back at my sister, and spoke simultaneously.
âGravity.â
âWell, since you two definitely didnât break this bench, we should probably leave before the venue starts looking for somebody to blame.â
âWeâre heading out soon?â I asked. My sister nodded.
âItâs getting late, and I donât want to risk my headache getting worse. I figured we could say our farewells to everyone and get going back to the hotel.â
âSure.â I said. âSounds good.â
Goodbyes were brief, especially when we noticed some of the caterers going outside and examining the remains of the bench.
It seemed like a minute was all that had passed by the time we pulled into the hotel parking lot. In even less time, we were standing outside our respective rooms.
âWe need to be checked out by eleven, but I want us ready to leave by eight. That way, we can stop by that breakfast place we passed on the way here and have a nice meal before the ride back.â My sister swiped her keycard against the lock.
âSounds like a plan. Talk to you in the morning.â
My sister gave a knowing smile. âEnjoy your night.â
âYou too.â
Soon enough, the door to our room closed behind Danielle and I as we stepped inside and kicked off our shoes. The silence was almost disorienting. The wedding, especially towards the end of the night, had been so loud even if we were outside. The car ride back was much quieter, but the radio had still been playing alongside of our own conversation. Now here, in the hotel room, the only sound was the soft humming of the air conditioner. Danielle gave a curious glance.
âPajamas?â I shrugged off my coat.
Danielle unhooked her necklace, took off the bracelet, and then reached up to take off her earrings. âYeah, but I gotta shower first. I need to get rid of this makeup, hairspray and stuff. It felt gross.â
âWant some help?â
Danielle dropped the jewelry onto the nightstand and smirked. âYou want to help me shower?â
I shook my head. âIâm asking you if you want me to help you shower.â
âWhat happened to keeping things casual?â
âHey, Iâm just extending the offer. Itâs up to you if you want to accept it.â
Danielle grinned for several moments. âAlright, on behalf of the royal court, I accept your assistance in maintaining my cleanliness.â
âDoes they even have royalty here?â
âHow am I supposed to know?â She shrugged, took off her socks, and began walking towards the washroom. âNow come on.â
I tore off my tie with such force it might have torn. I wasnât sure. I didnât bother to check before throwing it onto the bed and following Danielle. The way she grinned with such a seductive humour was more than enough to tear of my attention. When I rounded the corner, Danielle was holding the hem of her skirt in her hands. The lifted fabric showed several inches of her bare thighs.
âCare to help me undress?â
âDo you have any idea how much of a stupid question that is?â I smiled and walked forward. Together, we slowly worked to lift the dress and peel it off like a shirt. Well, Danielle lifted the dress. I held my hands just below hers as they rose, running my fingers across her body while I pretended to help. Past her thighs and hips to reveal a plain pair of black underwear that almost resembled boxers, but distinctly feminine. It took only a moment to figure it was probably to better conceal her delicate while wearing a skirt.
I didnât linger on her underpants, since more of her lovely body was being revealed. The fabric rose to her smooth, toned stomach. One inch, then a second, then a third, up to her cute little belly button. I continued to rub my hands along her sides. I didnât even realise that Danielle had bunched the dress to hold it in one hand until the other flicked me on the forehead.
âI get that youâre copping a feel, but Iâm actually need a bit of a hand here. This dress is pretty tight in the shoulders.â
âOh, uh... yeah.â
My tracing fingers temporarily switched to helpful ones as they hooked underneath the fabric and assisted in pulling it upwards. It didnât stop me from visually ogling the way her black bra was revealed mere inches from my face. At least, it didnât stop me until we got to the aforementioned shoulders. We must have looked pretty stupid for the bit of time we spent with Danielle in her underwear while her head and arms were stuck in a dress. Eventually, and with a distinct tearing noise, the dress came free. Danielle didnât bother to check what part tore. She just dumped it onto the floor and huffed.
âI guess it was a nice dress. AnywaysâŚâ She turned around and grabbed her hair with one hand to hold it out of the way. âMind getting my bra?â
My smile returned, but faded just as quickly when I got my hands on the back of her bra.
âUhh, how do I...?â
âYou pull the straps together, then apart.â
âLike this?â
âOw, no. You gotta do it likeâah screw it.â
Danielle reached back and unhooked the mechanism in the blink of an eye. She dropped the bra to the floor and turned around.
âOkay, clearly, weâre not good at foreplay, so letâs just skip it and actually take our shower. Agreed?â
I nodded, somehow managing to stare at her face instead of her breasts. âAgreed.â
Danielle pulled off her panties while I went to work on the buttons of my shirt. It was clear we were done wasting time when a nude Danielleâs hands were fumbling with the buckle of my belt before I was even done with the second button. Despite the disposal of intentional foreplay, the simple concept of Danielle pulling down my pants and boxers in one single motion made my lower member get revealed at full mast. My shirt fell onto the floor beside my pants, followed shortly by my socks. Danielle smiled again.
âBetter.â
Of course, I looked at her ass as she stepped through the fancy glass door of the shower. There was no possibility otherwise, as made evident by the way she stared at my manhood when I followed suit. I looked at her.
âYou do realise that this water is gonna be freezing cold for a bit while it heats up, right?â
Danielle glared. âAnd you realise that the implication is us keeping each other warm in the meantime?â
Good enough. I turned and switched on the water as Danielle pressed herself up against mine. I could feel her breasts squishing and nipples poking into my back while she wrapped her arms around my midsection. That definitely helped distract me from the sudden, biting chill spraying down against my face. Thankfully, it didnât take very long for the water to heat up. When that happened, Danielle and I pivoted in place. That meant Danielle had the first crack at the hot water.
That decision was entirely because of how gentleman-ly I was, and not because it meant I was left massaging shampoo into her scalp and playing with her hair in a way I never could before. It was also due to that gentleman-lyness that after we swapped places again so that we could apply soap to her body without it washing off immediately, I focused on her breasts first. After all, being stuck inside that bra all day surely made them extra dirty and in need of cleaning.
Her skin was so soft and pliable under my fingers that it was downright mesmerizing. I pressed myself up behind her and rested my head on her shoulder while I worked. It didnât matter that my very erect cock was pressed upwards in the crack of Danielleâs ass. All that mattered was Danielle.
Her nipples were stiff like pebbles as I rolled them in between my fingers. Again, just to make sure they were clean. It was an entirely new sensation than when I was massaging her breast during our mostly-nude cuddle session yesterday. With the hot water spraying against my back, her bare body flush against mine, and both of her breasts in my hands, I could have mistaken it for a dream.
âI think my boobs are clean now.â She let out a husky breath.
I smiled. âJust had to make sure.â
I let my hands lower, rubbing the skin beneath her chest. Back and forth my fingers travelled from her sides until they met in the center of her torso, then back again. I took my time heading downwards, faintly feeling her ribcage underneath her skin. When my hands reached her waist, I made sure to spend some time scrubbing her tummy. Once again, I had to make sure she was clean. Nothing more. Danielle even giggled a little bit when I soaped up the cavity of her belly button.
She followed my hands without a word as I guided her to turn around. Then, I set myself back in the same position as before. That meant my penis was now pressed up against her stomach as she hugged me and we rested our heads on each otherâs shoulder. Danielle made sure to pull her hair out of the way so that I would examine my work and ensure I applied the suds evenly across her back. It didnât matter that that soap on my hands had been used up long before I finished with her front and I never reapplied.
Her back muscles tensed and flexed instinctively under my touch. Again, I travelled side to side, slowly inching my way downwards like a printer as I lathered the not-soap across her pale skin. I could feel Danielle smile into my neck when my hands finally curved downwards to gropeâI mean clean, the swells of her perfect ass.
From the divet where the cheeks met her thighs to the crack in between, I gently but firmly massaged every possible millimetre of her rear end. I could even feel Danielle flinch slightly when my fingers brushed over her delicate rosebud. I wasnât quite sure whether that was an opposition to the idea or anticipation, but I decided to play it safe. If Danielle wanted that... cleaned... she could ask me another time when we were both ready for that kind of advancement.
âAlright, time to clean your legs. Turn back around.â
Danielle did so, and this time I made sure to re-lather my hands with the bar of soap she was clutching. Then, I didnât press myself back into her like I did when washing her upper body. Instead, I knelt down on the floor of the shower so that my face was level with her navel. We had to scoot a little farther back in the shower so that the water wasnât spraying on her, but it was still hot against the back of my neck. Still, that didnât distract me as I began working on her left leg.
I started with her feet. She braced herself with her hands against the walls of the shower while I lifted her leg and gently applied the suds to the tops of her feet, then curled down to clean the heel, followed by the bridge, and forward still until I squeezed soapy fingers in between her toes. Then I lowered her leg back to the shower floor and slowly massaged up her calf. As I expected from a girl who do cheerleader, the muscles could be mistaken for braided steel cable. They were only slightly visible from an outside perspective, but the dense core was revealed the moment my hands began kneading her flesh.
Further I continued, up past the inside of her knee, and across her shapely thigh. The muscle seemed like a paradox underneath her soft, delicate skin âlike iron wrapped in velvet. I rose more and more up her thigh, circling my hands around to the back and then returning to the front again and again. I rose up so high that my knuckles were faintly brushing against her sweet folds. They were distinct in their wetness, and I know that the shower water had nothing to do with it. Then, I switched to the other leg and did the exact same thing. Foot, calf, then thigh, all slow and methodical as I explored every molecule of my best friendâs body. Well, everywhere except the final spot.
I sat on the balls of my feet and scooched forward even more, bringing my face mere inches away from Danielleâs pelvis. This close, I could see the stubble of her pubic hair just barely peeking out from her pores. I could see the muscles in her abdomen twitch when I rubbed my fingers along her labia. So, I rubbed again. Then a third time.
âAlright, looks like youâre all soaped up. Now for the rinse.â I stood. I could see the annoyance in Danielleâs face even as she grinned.
Still, she never made any opposition as we swapped positions and began working together to rinse off the suds scattered across her slippery body. When the last drops of shampoo were finally washed free from her hair, Danielle chuckled.
âYour turn.â
I knew that was going to happen. Danielle always gave more than she got. Whether it was revenge taken too far on a harmless prank, a sassy comeback turned into a roast felt by the victim, or even a heartfelt gift blown out of the water by a present with love and care all but oozing from the wrapping, Danielle never lost at anything. So, I knew that she was going to take just as much time and effort in âcleaningâ me, and then some.
First was the shampoo, and that immediately caused her method of revenge to be plainly obvious. She was pressed up against me as flush as she could possibly be, which meant her nipples were boring holes into my chest as she massaged the product into my scalp. Not only that, she was moving. It was subtle, but distinct. Danielle was grinding on me. My cock was pressed in between our pelvises, but Danielleâs was shifting up and down as she rolled up onto her toes before going back down. She even tilted her hips back just a bit so that her sex would be jutting out to graze against me in a way almost reminiscent of last nightâs mutual masturbation.
Somehow, she made it even worse. when she turned me around and started soaping up my body. Iâll admit, I took my time when washing her purely for my own entertainment. It was a delight to admire and massage her perfect body. If it made Danielle feel good in the process, that was just a bonus. I could all but guarantee that Danielleâs own machinations in washing me were nothing more than an attempt to get me painfully aroused. An attempt that worked in stride.
Danielle kept herself pressed up against me, grinding away as she rubbed soapy hands up and down my chest. Furthermore, she wasnât just resting her head in my shoulderâshe was all but nuzzling me. As her hands worked across my torso, her mouth was giving little kisses and licks against my neck. When her head tilted up just enough for her to nibble at my earlobeâstill soapy with shampoo.
âOooh, youâre trembling.â She cooed. Her voice was soft, lips barely brushing against my ear as she whispered. âYou must be cold. I can fix that.â
If I thought Danielle was pressing into me before, then she may as well have fused into my skin in the next moment. She was no longer resting into me and lightly grinding, she was hugging me tightly against her, smooshing her slippery breasts even further into my back and sliding one of her legs in between my own. By the time she returned her lips to my neck I was throbbing down below.
Washing my back was even worse, because now we were chest-to-chest. It also meant that she returned to grinding on my pelvis, but with how tightly she was pressing into me I had to fight my instincts to buck my hips. I was pleasantly surprised when Danielle took an interest in âwashingâ my rear end the same way I had done to hers. I had never imagined previously that a manâs body would be as attractive to a woman as a womanâs was to a man, but that was being presented in full force now. What fun I may have had exploring Danielleâs nude form, Danielle was replicating and more.
When Danielle got onto her knees to âwash my legsâ, I was all but leaking. Having her knelt down before me, slippery and dripping as water cascaded over her, looking up at me past my throbbing erectionâI knew that image would be seared into my mind forever. She didnât comment, she just smiled and grabbed the soap to reapply. I couldnât even focus on the way her twinkling eyes were staring into my ownâthe feeling of her soft, gentle fingers rubbing up my legs in a way that was almost worship overpowered everything else. If this was anything like how it felt for her, no wonder she was being cutthroat.
I expected her to finally touch the one place she hadnât so far. She would wrap her hand around my shaft and pump just a few times but then pull away, leaving me so unsatisfied like I did to her.
I didnât expect her to lean forward and lick my lower head.
âOhâ I yelped. Danielle smiled in a way that could make a succubus blush.
âJust making sure that youâre clean. Donât mind me.â
I didnât get a chance to respond. Danielle rested one hand on my thigh and used the other to gently clasp onto my shaft. When she moved her grip forward, she used the motion to pull herself towards me and plant a gentle kiss on my tip. Then she pushed back to bring her hand closer to my base before repeating the process. Stroke, kiss, stroke. Stroke, kiss, stroke.
All the while, she was staring up at me with her big, brown, glittering doe eyes. Her wet hair hung in a curtain behind her head, and I could see the curve of her ass resting atop her bare feet every time she leaned forward. She was beyond beautiful.
The shower was practically steaming with the temperature of the water, but that was nothing compared to the warmth when she opened her mouth. The head of my cock slipped in between the small, soft pillows of her lips into a sopping wetness that radiated with heat.
Fuck. Me.
Danielle was actually giving me a blowjob. Just comprehending that sentence in my mind almost made me burst right then. There was nothing I could do but use one hand to steady myself against the wall as my knees started to buckle. Even with her mouth full, I could see her smiling just by the way her eyes twinkled. I expected her to pull off my cock and make some witty comment.
I was never happier to be proven wrong.
Instead of moving backwards, Danielle went forwards, further onto my member. Her lips slid across the skin of my shaft in wet bliss, and I could feel her tongue rubbing against the underside of my cock as she delved deeper. She made it most of the way before she stopped, which told me that the odd pressure on my tip was likely the entrance to her throat.
This was distinctly different than any other âsexualâ act I had shared with Danielle previously. When grabbing her breasts or kissing her, the acts were made interesting solely by the fact that it was Danielle whom I was doing it to. This, on the other hand, felt amazing. I couldnât kiss the back of my hand or squeeze a stress ball to replicate this. No, this was Danielle with most of my little friend stuffed into her mouth and her tongue starting to dance little swirls on the underside. It was Danielle who moved her hand from my thigh to the delicate pouch hanging between my legs and properly initiated the blowjob.
There was no chance of me lasting any moderate length of time. With one hand wrapped partially around the shaft and pressed into my pubic bone, the other gently cupping my balls, and tongue passionately lathering up every inch she could reach as her lips slid forward and back, it was a miracle that I could hold out for as long as I did. By the third time her lips pressed up against her fingers wrapped around my cock, I was groaning.
âDan, Iâm...â
I couldnât finish my words. Danielle pulled off with a loud, wet âPOPâ and immediately started pumping her hand at a pace significantly faster than she had been going previously. Even if it lacked the distinct feel of her mouth, the rapid stimulation of her manual milking proved more than effective. A single grunt was all I could manage before I began pulsing. Danielle made sure to bring her face in closely.
The first rope of cum hit her at the base of her hair, but strung down in a thin line across her face. The second splattered against one closed eye. The third shot halfway onto her parted lips, with the other half going through the gap onto her tongue. The fourth and the remaining leftover drops all dribbled onto her chin. Even when no more seed sprang forth to paint her face a paler shade, my shaft still throbbed with release, brought to a much higher level of satisfaction since Danielle never stopped pumping her hand. Her gentle yet firm fingers milked out every drop I was willing to give and then some.
Only after my throbbing pulses ceased did Danielle slow her pace to a crawl, then a stop. She looked up at me with those big, adorable, sexy, teasing eyes. Well, one of them. The other was closed because of my cum sticking to her eyelid. She swallowed.
âHmph. I was just making sure you were clean and you had to go and get me all dirty. Looks like itâs my turn with the water again.â
I wasnât sure how I managed to speak as she stood up. âWell, I still need to rinse, so you can wait a minute.â
âSuit yourself. Iâll just have a bit of a snack in the meantime.â
I was confused, right until she dragged a finger across her closed eye to scoop up the jizz. She glanced at it for a moment, then looked me dead in the eyes as she slid the finger into her mouth. I watched her suckle on it like some sort of popsicle until her finger came back out spotless.
âMmm. Did you have apple today?â
âFuck off.â We both chuckled and swapped positions once again so that I could stand under the water. Danielle didnât help me rinse the same way I did with her. Instead, she just leaned against the back wall and made a goddamned show out of scooping up the cream staining her face and making loud, lewd noises as she slurped it off of her fingers. I hadnât even begun to soften after my climax, and the unreasonably sexy performance in front of me brought an aching arousal right back into my loins.
Distractions aside, I rinsed the soap in record time. It was almost sad to watch Danielle get back under the water and gently scrub her face. Thankfully it wasnât all bad. It gave me the opportunity to saddle right up against her and hug her from behind. Danielle took several moments to slowly and carefully rub her fingers into the creases of her face, likely to ensure that both cum and lingering makeup were both removed. I spent that time rubbing her stomach, kissing her neck, and occasionally bringing a hand up to brush against the bottom of her breasts.
After a long while, Danielle shut off the water and we moved from the shower into the rest of the bathroom to towel off. She laughed when I took the initiative and rubbed my towel across her body.
âOh! Youâre drying me? Surely this is just a gesture of kindness with no ulterior motives of any kind.â
âOf course, of course.â
I agreed with a smile as she lifted her arms above her head. I greedily drank up the sight of her body glistening in the light like a man dying of thirst. She even had one hip cocked out to the side as if she were a model. Iâll admit, I forgot that I had the towel in my hands. I just wanted to rub her body again.
In a disappointingly little amount of time, her skin was scoured of any droplets of moisture. I couldnât help but plant a kiss on her belly button as I stood back up, though. Danielle laughed, dropped her arms, took the towel from my hands, and did the same thing with me. Once again, she stepped it up by also using her own body as a towel, rubbing against me like a cheerleader working really hard to get tips at a topless car wash.
I started scrubbing my head with the towel to dry my hair shortly after Danielle did the same and watched as she stepped over to the counter to grab a hair dryer. She must have seen me staring.
âDo you ever get the feeling that youâre being watched by a voyeur perving on you?â
âNope.â I grinned.
âGot it. Just checking.â
She resumed. It was interesting to watch her glossy, sopping black hair shift into a softer shade. It was equally as dark, but the texture was different. Like liquid ink compared to black velvet. When she was done, she turned to me in all her nude glory.
âAlright, your turn. Iâm not letting you soak into the pillow.â
âFine by me.â I stepped forward to stand in front of the mirror.
âTurn around, on your knees.â
âReally?â
âYou donât need to see the mirror, since Iâm the one drying your hair. It also makes it easier for me to see when youâre down there.â
âWhatever you say, your grace.â
I placed my knees on the chilly tile floor of the bathroom and smiled up at Danielle. She clicked her tongue.
âNah ah, eyes forward. Itâs harder to work when your head is tilted like that.â
I wasnât going to argue, especially when turning my gaze as directed led to her smooth, soft stomach being mere inches from my face. If I flicked my eyes upwards, I could see the outline of her small breasts hovering just above my head. If I looked down, I could see her mostly-shaven pelvis leading towards the present between her thighs. The entire time, I let my hands rest on Danielleâs hips. My thumbs traced lazy circles across her skin. With the added sensation of the hair dryer blowing against my scalp and Danielle working a comb to let the heat wick away any moisture left, it was dreamlike.
Soon enough, Danielle turned off the dryer and set both it and the comb back down on the counter.
âAlright, now weâre ready for bed.â
Danielle led the way back into the room. I noticed how both of us shivered lightly when the washroom door opened. With the heat of the shower, the temperature of the washroom increased a distinct amount compared to the hotel roomâa temperature difference that left goosebumps as we walked back towards the bed. Danielle grabbed a pair of pajama pants.
âWait!â
She halted and glanced over; one eyebrow raised in a silent question. I gently took the pants from her hand.
âNot yet. We arenât done.â
The other eyebrow raised to match the first along with her smirk. âOh, is that so? You help me clean up in the shower and now youâre offering some extra stress relief?â
âI'm nothing but a gentleman.â I said.
âRight, what happened to keeping things casual?â
âThis is casual. Youâve never heard of casual sex?â
Danielle chuckled. âWhich implies the existence of ranked competitive sex.â
âExactly. Care to stay in the little league and release some tension?â
âYou know...â Danielle wrapped her arms around my neck and batted those big, beautiful eyes. âI always imagined my first time would be a bit more romantic than a cheap fling.â
I shrugged. âWe could get some sojus from the vending machine down the hall and pretend itâs wine.â
âHmmm. Might be a bit too fancy for me. Anything else?â
âHow about we turn on the TV and do it while watching people get eaten alive?â
Danielle smiled. âThatâs more like it.â
âSpeaking of eating people, Iâm a little hungry.â I cupped one hand against her mound to allude towards my point. Danielle drew in a short breath at the contact.
âOh? Am I on the menu?â
âYouâre the dessert, actually.â
âI am?â Danielle said with a smirk. She jumped backwards unceremoniously onto the bed and slid over so that she was lying almost in the same way she would be when sleeping. On her back, stark nude with her hair sprawled over the pillow. It was reminiscent of yesterdayâs fingering, but the implication of what was going to happen next was so much sweeter. Then she spread her legs.
Like opening a treasure chest, Danielleâs delicates were revealed to me as I crawled onto my stomach in between her thighs. Her outer folds were parted and glossy with moisture, while the inner folds were veritably dripping with arousal.
âWell, are you just gonna sit there staring at your meal, or are you gonna take some initiative and eat it?â
I looked up past her pelvis towards Danielleâs grin. âIâve always been a fan of sandwiches, but this one looks soggy.â
âGo fuck yourself.â She said.
âNot until I fuck you, first.â
It was more for the shock factor more than anything, which I got in spades when I abruptly gave a long, firm lick up the entire length of her slit. Danielle shuddered, legs twitching, and abdomen flinching. Once again comparing the sensation to expectations, Danielleâs most precious place didnât taste like anything special. It just tasted like, well... Danielle. Perhaps with a touch of a metallic bite, but overall, it was just a taste of clean, freshly showered skin. It had that in common with almost everything else about intimacy. It wasnât even the act itself that brought pleasure, it was the knowledge about what the act was, and the fact it was Danielle gasping at the sudden contact.
Much like yesterday, I still had no idea what I was doing. I only have the vague idea that I should probably start slow, and then work up into things. However, the surprise lick was too fun of an idea to pass up, even if it starts off a lot stronger than I probably should have. When I gave a second pass with my tongue, it was much gentler than the first. I dragged my flesh along the outside of her flowering lips with a fraction of the pressure. Then I did the same to the other side. I planted a soft kiss to the front of her pelvis, then returned my nose to her skin while I lathered her folds with light swaths of my tongue.
I didnât even notice that my arms were wrapping around her legs until my hands came to rest atop her thighs like I was preparing for recoil. Underneath her skin, I could sense her muscles shifting and flexing just slightly with the applications of stimulus. Even though I couldnât see her face from this position, I could feel the calm, pleasured smile crawling across Danielleâs face just by the way her pussy relaxed against my mouth.
Aside from her fingers lazily curling into my hair, she made no movement to interfere with my actions. That left me with all the freedom I wanted. I was in no rush- no hurry to reach the finish. I was simply going to enjoy the journey and hopefully learn a thing or two along the way. After all, the only way I would get better at going down on Danielle is if I did it a lot.
I started slow. That served as a solid baseline for both myself to get acquainted with the concept of eating out my friend, and hopefully to allow for a lovely buildup of pleasure on her end. My tongue traced long, gentle circles across the skin around her slit. Occasionally, the edge of my probing implement would tickle against folds that almost seemed to be reaching outwards towards stimulation. Either that, or Danielle was making minute adjustments with her hips to try and twist herself into my tongue.
That confirmation was all I needed to quickly change my strategy. Instead of using my tongue like a brush against her canvas, I lowered my mouth to cover the entirety of her flower in a warm, wet seal. Danielle twitched amidst a pleasured groan. I could feel her fingers dig their way towards my scalp. They were still loose, but no longer were they merely residing in my hair. Now they held me in a grip that had only enough pressure to convince me to stay where I was. Not that I was planning on leaving anyway.
Those fingers quickly tightened when I dragged my tongue up the length of her sweet sex. I brought it down in the same way, then back up, then back down once more. It was like I was licking her own tongue, but with a bit more texture. The thought made me smile. As of this moment, I had officially kissed Danielle on both her upper lips, and her lower ones.
When I began to lick upwards once more, I took a bit more initiative. My tongue applied more pressure forward and pushed aside folds to allow a shallow entry. Danielle let out a long breath while I lapped up her intimate fluids. I imagined this is what a dog felt like when drinking water- tongue extending to scoop out what nourishment was manageable before pulling it back to swallow. The most I could hope was that my motions were bringing Danielle pleasure.
If licking her folds was better than licking around them, and pushing my way inside was better than staying out, then that surely meant going deeper was the best I could do. So, I strived to use every centimeter of my tongue. I pulled it as far out of my own throat as I could possibly manage while depositing it into Danielle. I stretched it out so far it almost hurt, but that didnât matter. Silky walls squeezed from every angle and fingers tightened their grip in my hair. Still, I knew it wasnât enough. This needed to be perfect for her, and I was almost certain that my methods werenât quite what she required. Despite each of her actions pulling me further into her, I managed to tilt my head out to free my mouth.
âTell me what you need.â
âFingers and tongue.â
Her response was given in a single, slow, exhaled breath. The same one that finished with a satisfied purr when I pulled one hand from where it was wrapped around her thigh. That hand reached down under my chin and squeezed its way to lend a pair of fingers alongside my delving tongue. The added mass inside of her was apparent in the way it made her leg muscles shudder. I didnât need to ask for my next instructions.
âMmm, lick my clit. Keep going with the fingers.â
I did just that. I pulled my tongue free from the confines of her fleshy walls and focused attention on the small nub positioned at the top point where both sides of her sex met. As limited as my knowledge about this sort of thing was, it was enough that I knew the clitoris was very sensitive. I started lightly, giving nothing more than gentle, rasping licks against its bulbous surface. It seemed like such a small, inconsequential thing to do. Surely such a simple action couldnât make that much of a difference.
Danielleâs reaction proved otherwise. The transition was instantaneous. Her breath caught in her throat, the fingers in my hair tightened even further, and my other hand had to actually put in effort in order to keep Danielleâs leg from clamping shut around my head. When I curled my fingers against constraining walls in time with my tongue brushing up against Danielleâs button, she shuddered. It became overtly apparent that I was now playing this game on âEasyâ mode.
She was much more worked up than she had been letting on, or the effects of stimulating her clit were even more prominent than I thought. Either way, it seemed like Danielle was squirming and moaning within mere moments after providing my directions. She wasnât faking it either, I could tell that much. Her silky walls were rippling and squeezing on my fingers too much for this to be an act. Glancing my eyes upwards past her perfect body, her face was twisted in pleasure. Her eyes were closed and her nose was pointed to the sky.
It didnât matter that one of her hands had moved up to clench onto a single breast, since the other was damn near tearing hair from my scalp. I also didnât feel so bad for cumming too quickly in the shower, since I may still have beaten Danielleâs time.
If I had thought that bringing Danielle to climax with my finger yesterday was magical, doing the same thing while my tongue was on her clit was even better.
It seemed to last forever. Danielle ground her pelvis against my face and hand throughout the entirety of her orgasm. Though it may have been an attempt to get more stimulation, her wiggling ironically made it harder to apply pressure to her clit. I somehow managed.
By the time Danielle finally settled down, the opening credits music had finished playing and allowed for the episode to continue. The noise of arguments considering walkers in a barn was drowned out of existence by Danielle gently tugging on my hair to get me to pull away.
âMmm, that was pretty good.â
âOnly good?â I teased and propped myself on my elbows.
âYeah. Youâd think with all the time you spend watching porn that youâd know how to do this better.â
âSounds like I need some practice. Care to be my dummy?â
âHeh.â She chuckled. âIs âdummyâ in reference to a testing doll, or are you just calling me an idiot?â
âWhy not both?â I asked. Danielle smiled in response.
Danielleâs eyes glanced down between my legs towards my stalwart erection. âLooks like our budget foreplay got someone excited.â
I shrugged. âYou try going down on someone while watching people being eaten alive. Nothing sexier.â
âIs that an invitation?â
âOnly one way to find out.â
Danielle laughed and sat up, crossing her legs so that we were facing each other on the bed. âYou know, I missed this confidence of yours. We could cut at each other back and forth and you would never bat an eye, but then you just kept getting so awkward about this weekend.â
I gave a pause before my answer. âWell, I was afraid. I got us into this mess, and I thought that us having to pretend to be dating would screw everything up.â
âI told you; everything is gonna be fine.â She said.
"Everything was fine until you started acting all lovey-dovey, and I had no idea how to react. I thought that if I did it again, it would be weird."
âIt was already weird, dummy.â
âWeirder, then.â
Danielle brushed a lock of hair behind her ear. âSo, you decided to spill your guts and you think everythingâs fine because now Iâm your actual girlfriend?â
âOh, not at all.â I shook my head. âIâm still terrified of saying the wrong thing. Iâm just matching your energy and hoping I donât step too far.â
Danielle raised an eyebrow. âMatching my energy, huh?â
âYep.â
âSo, if I were to say that this was my first time...â
Danielle placed a hand on my chest and pushed, forcing me down onto my back. I could only watch in anxious desire as she got onto her knees and scooched forward until my cock, angling to the sky, was held against her pelvis like she was measuring the depth. She even kept it in place by wrapping her fingers around it and holding me against her. If I hadnât cum in the shower earlier, I probably would have done so at the thought of what we were about to do next. The end of Danielleâs hanging sentence was filled with implications.
ââŚwhat would you do?â
I smiled. âIâd respond by asking if you had condoms in your bag like you had this all planned out.â
âI donât even know what Iâm going to have for dinner until five minutes before. What gives you the idea that I could plan something like this?â
âGood point. I take it that means you donât have a condom hidden away somewhere?â
Danielle shook her head. âThe only reason I agreed to come was just so I could tease you about all this.â She then smiled. âFalling in love with you turned out to be a happy little accident along the way.â
âWow thatâs firstâ She laughed. I rested a hand on her thigh. It was hard to focus with her lovely figure all but straddling me, yet I managed to keep it together.
âJokes aside, because I have a serious question.â
âWhy so serious?â
âDanielle.â
âOkay, sorry. Question?â
âAre you sure you want to do this?â I glanced down towards where her hand was pressing my shaft into her stomach. âWithout a condom?â
Her face softened. âI think so?â
âYou think so?â
She frowned. âI mean... kinda. I want to do this. Like, a lot. I really, really want this, even if we donât have a condom. But I know that we shouldnât do it without a condom. But I also know that you can always pull out, and then we can also get a pill or something tomorrow. Plus, itâs a safe day so the chances of anything are pretty much non-existent anyway.â
âSo, the verdict is...â
Danielle closed her eyes for a moment, let out a deep breath, then opened them again to reveal her melted chocolate irises.
âYes.â
Danielle responded in kind with a wink, since her hands were occupied. One was placed on my chest to brace herself as she lifted her hips enough so that my member was dragged until it rested against her lower lips like it was knocking for entry. The other hand held it there, pushing lightly until it lined up just right. The head of my cock was nestled into the lovely nook, just lightly spreading apart the folds like they were curtains covering a window. Danielle held there for many moments until I glanced upwards.
âWhat, is this the one and only time the amazing Danielle nervous about something?â
âOh, shut up. Of course Iâm nervous. Itâs my first time.â
âMine too.â I argued. Danielle rolled her eyes in response.
âYeah, but you arenât gonna be the one bleeding for it. This is gonna hurt so gimme a minute, you jerk.â
I held up my hands. âGeez, okay. Take your time.â
Danielle visually steeled herself. She waited a few more moments, took a deep breath, then carefully began lowering. It felt heavenly. The head of my cock slipped inside of her warm, wet tunnel, immediately being squeezed from all angles like the most intimate and naughty of hugs. She held there for many moments, taking deep breaths and preparing herself. I waited patiently for her to continue.
I didnât expect her to drop.
Right down to the base in one, swift, solid motion. One moment, my head was languishing in the confines of her sex, and the next, it was shoved to the depths while the rest of my shaft was engulfed. Danielle shuddered on top of me while I made several un-masculine noises. When I finally brought my vision back into focus on Danielleâs face, I expected to see it twisted in pain after she just impaled herself. Instead, she was visibly straining to keep from laughing. She failed.
It was like a melody of humour while I struggled to comprehend what was happening. Soon Danielle rested her other hand on my chest with a smile.
âOh, you should see the look on your face right now.â
âDoesnât it hurt?â I asked meekly.
âNot at all.â She smirked and ground her hips side to side. Her inner walls rippled against me in oh-so-lovely ways.
âHow?â
âIâve been doing sports since I was five. My hymen fucked off before I even knew what it was. Even if it didnât, my toy would have cleared up whatever was left years ago.â
âHuh, wait... a toy?â
âMhm.â She nodded. âItâs pink and squishy. Youâll have fun using it on me when we get back home. For now...â
Danielle lifted her hips almost as quickly as she had dropped them, right up until the only thing residing within her was my lower head.
â...I donât feel like taking it slow.â
Oh, dear god.
When Danielle dropped again, I nearly saw stars. Then she rose and repeated the action a second time. Then a third. Then a fourth. All the while, she was only gaining speed. I had been expecting slow, careful sex for our first time, but she was a veritable piston as she went up and down. To think that Danielle, who mere days ago had been my casual best friend, was now riding me like â well, it was almost too much. All I could do was put my hands on her hips. I didnât even notice that she had moved off of her knees and into a full crouch for a maximum-efficiency-cowgirl ride.
I could feel the way she clenched around me every time she lifted, like her insides were desperately clinging on to the stimulation. Meanwhile, every time she hilted me once again, I could see her modest breasts jiggle. They were mesmerizing, despite their smaller size.
âHey, my eyes are up here.â
âIâm justâoohh, imagining putting googly-eyes on your nipples.â
When Danielle bottomed out once more, she stayed there. Her eyes drilled into mine for many moments before her lips curled into a response.
âBoobly eyes.â
We both snorted out a chuckle. I could certainly feel that. She rippled around me, and just as quickly, she let out a shuddered gasp.
âOoh, it feels weird to laugh when youâre deep inside me.â
âBad weird or good weird?â
She smiled. âOhhâgood weird. Definitely good weird.â
She should have known what I was going to do next. Unfortunately, I think the context of the setting was just enough of a distraction that she didnât put all the pieces together in time. I saw her face twist into a warning.
âWait, donââ
Too late. My hands, on her hips, immediately started to flick and brush against her sides. She revealed yesterday on the couch that she was ticklish. That mistake was quickly brought to light as I unleashed an all-out tickle assault.
She squealed out, eyes wide, and clamped down on my dick with the force of a handshake between two guys trying to see who winces first. Her hands desperately reached for mine, but I was quicker. Wherever she grabbed, my fingers had already tickled and moved on. Hips, thighs, back, armpits, anything I could reach was a target. I was sitting up to be able to claim more ground as Danielle fought back in blissful agony. Eventually, Danielle had retreated enough that she fell back onto the bed and I was now leaning over herâstill sheathed inside her sex. Her hands may have been pushing me away to end the assault, but I donât think that she even realised her legs were firmly locked together around my waist to keep me buried inside her.
Somehow, I managed to lay my weight down on top of her, pinning her hands in between our chests. Meanwhile, mine were free to explore and tickle away at her waist. She writhed underneath me, head twisting back and forth as she giggled and moaned. Any hope of a facade or confident act was gone. Within moments, tears were streaming down Danielleâs face and she was gasping for breath.
âStop! Stop, ohmygod please!â
I could easily understand the reactions. The way that her velvet tunnel was roiling around me made her expressions obvious. Every time my fingers brushed against her; she squeezed taught on my shaft. If it felt even half as good for her as it did for me, then that combined with the actual tickling would be nothing short of overwhelming.
âPlease, pleasepleaseplease! Oh my fucking god please stop!â
I relented in my attack, but it wasnât for Danielleâs sake. If I continued, the way her pussy was milking me would have made me empty the contents of my balls in record time. I ceased the movements of my hands and held them still on her waist, using her as leverage to push myself back up so that I was leaning over her. The instant that her hands came free, she opted to hit me. A solid, square punch right into the sternum.
âAsshole!â
âHey, you said it felt good when you laughed.â
âThat doesnât mean you start tickling me!â Her voice was angry, but she was all smiles.
âYou liked it. You almost came.â
It was an educated guess, but apparently one that was spot on.
âYeah? Let me tell youâthereâs a difference between enjoying something and something feeling good. If you ever want to do that again, you better hope that Iâm tied down because Iâm gonna fucking stab you after I cum.â
âSo BDSM is a possibility for the future. Noted.â
She blew an errant lock of hair away from her eyes and smirked. âLaugh it off, dumbass. Just know, if we do that, youâre the first one getting tied. Letâs see how much you like getting tickled while balls deep inside of me.â
Danielle unlocked her legs from around my waist and ground her hips like she was stirring a pot of soup using my dick as a spoon.
âNow come on, I was close.â
âSo was I, which is why I stopped.â
âIâm not asking you to keep going. Iâm telling you. Now.â
I gave an exaggerated sigh of mock reluctance. âFine. If you insist.â
This time, it was me doing the moving instead of Danielle. Instead of her bouncing up and down atop me, I was the one doing the thrusting. We were locked in a pseudo-missionary position as I brought my hips back slowly before sending them forward once more in a swift motion. It was ecstatic. To look down beneath me and see Danielle, hair spread around her face like an angelâs halo, was nothing short of a miracle. I was fucking Danielle. I was fucking my best friend. I was fucking my girlfriend. My best friend Danielle. My girlfriend Danielle.
When I stared into her eyes, I could feel the desperation quickly building on both of our faces. At least we were both premature. Danielle gritted her teeth and spoke in between grunts of pleasure.
âDonât you fucking dare cum before me.â
âDan, IâŚâ
âNo. Donât do it. Donât, you stupid piece of shit. Just let me cum, fucking make me cum and then you can cum.â
âI donâtâŚâ
Danielle pulled me down so that I was lying on top of her again, but this time her hands were free to hold taught onto the sides of my face as she smashed her lips against mine. I could feel her heartbeat pounding into my chest, or maybe it was my own. Either way, it felt like one of us was about to go into cardiac arrest. Danielleâs legs wrapped firm around my waist once more, which I could only vaguely consider a bad idea. The rest of me was desperately trying to hold on while Danielle convulsed through the beginnings of her climax.
If it felt amazing having her cum on my fingers and tongue, then there was no word in the English language that could describe the sensation of having Danielle squeeze down and shudder on my cock. Every millimetre cinched within the silky confines of a fleshy, vibrating hydraulic press that desperately sought to milk me in the way nature intended. It was bliss. It was agony. It was a sensation that I fought desperately to resist as I strained my muscles.
That wasnât the only battle I fought in that moment, either. With Danielleâs legs locked instinctively around me and her cunt gripping with the force of a god I didnât believe in; I had to force and push every muscle in order to try and pull out. It was not simply a battleâit was a war that needed to be won.
I lost.
Danielle and I both groaned into each otherâs mouth as I slammed my pelvis back against hers. If she wasnât going to let me pull out, intentionally or not, then I wasnât going to try anymore. With my shaft buried as deep as it would go and Danielle twitching underneath me, I gave one single, powerful throb before the flood gates opened.
I donât think either of us were cognizant enough to be aware of what was happening. We were both too locked into the throes of pleasure to resist, so we just let it wash over us like a tidal wave. Danielle swallowed my moans as I weakly attempted to thrust my buried cock further inside, firing off streams of sticky seed like a Super Soaker all the while. Every time I pulsed inside, Danielle did the same in response, which drew forth another throbbing jet from myself. A feedback loop of stimulation and pleasure shot through us both. I knew that I had stopped dumping spunk into Danielle after a few seconds, but that did not stop the aftershocks of our conjoined orgasm from shattering through us for what felt like a full minute of ecstasy.
When our lips finally parted and our eyes opened barely a centimeter from the otherâs, we were both panting heavily into each otherâs faces. I could smell the cheesecake on her breath.
âYou didnât pull out?â Her voice was a whisper.
âYou didnât let me.â I responded in kind. I watched her bite the inside of her cheek.
âAlright, Iâll take the hit for that. Since plan A failed, weâre going with plan B.â
âPlan B as in...â
Danielle chuckled. âPlan B. Gotta say, they nailed it with that name.â
âI guess they did.â
I lowered my head into the bed just over her shoulder. We were quiet for several moments, the silence only broken by the sound of an intense conversation coming from the TV. After a bit, Danielle nuzzled into my neck.
âYou can get off me whenever you feel like it.â
âWhat if I donât feel like it yet?â
âFine. Let me rephrase; get the fuck off of me so we can cuddle and watch our show, or Iâll shove my foot so far up your ass I can tie my shoes with your dental floss.â
âWow. Very romantic.â
Danielle was all but whispering into my ear. âYou want romantic? Wait âtill you see what I do with my other foot.â
âOkay, okay.â I chuckled and pushed myself back up onto my knees. I slowly withdrew my softening member from Danielleâs lovely pussy. The only fluids dribbling down her folds seemed to be her own, which made sense. Lying down like this- gravity couldnât really pull my cum from inside her. Not that it looked like Danielle minded. She just grabbed my arm and roughly yanked me down beside her. It only took a few moments of readjusting before we were back into our patented half-sitting-half-laying cuddle position, with one of my arms wrapped around Danielleâs waist and her head on my shoulder. Her hair smelled like cheap hotel shampoo.
âAhh, so much for keep things casual.â Danielle murmured.
665 notes
¡
View notes
Text
so all you need to do right now is disappear.
HHHHAPPY ISATVERSARY EVERYONE. hereâs redraws for every single battle cg in the game. 36 drawings this time around, with 11 of those being custom (though admittedly a good portion of those are edits). combined with the portrait redraws i made back in september, iâve made 114 redraws for this project! jesus christ! just like those redraws, these are completely free to use!! as long as iâm credited and itâs not for commercial purposes, go wild!! do whatever you want!!!
no i didnât make these for isatâs 1 year anniversary this is just wildly good timing.
i genuinely canât fit all of these cgs in one post even with the 30 image limit on browser, but iâll still try to fit Most of them below the cut (without making this post horrifically long), along with some notes that might be important đ
okay! once again, i labeled all of the custom art as such in the drive, but if you want a full list, the customs are hatless siffrin jackpot, bonnie jackpot, bonnie special attack, bigfrin attack, and a bunch of alts which are definitely not related to any projects iâve been thinking about donât worry about it. and out of those customs, only like. 3 of them are actually completely from scratch.
while i did my absolute best to keep the aspect ratios completely the same as the originals, thereâs 3 exceptions that i just couldnât get to work.
isabeauâs hair in his special attack cg wouldnât fit in frame if i kept things completely accurate to the og, so i moved his cg down a bit. it shouldnât cause any issues with modding or anything, itâll just appear slightly lower than it does in game. alasâŚ
isabeauâs sleeve and mirabelleâs hair made their jackpot sprites a little larger than the originals? iâm hoping this doesnât have too much of an effect (since the jackpot sprites have inconsistent sizes) but i canât test this myself unfortunately. aaa feel free to let me know on discord if any problems arise!!
i managed to fix these, so they arenât going to cause problems now, but my original drawings for mirabelle and siffrin in the final attack scene were a pain in the ass to fix. mirabelleâs sprite was slightly too talk to fit in frame and siffrinâs hat whacked bonnie in the face while i was editing everyone together. iâm only mentioning this because it took like an hour and a half to fix them and finish the scene.
all that aside, these were a fucking BLAST to work on. apparently this ended up taking 57 hours over exactly 10 days. which is a little worrying if you do the math on that but somehow i have not burnt myself out. i will be doing enemies at some point!!! but probably not for a little bit. i think my friends will actually kill me if i donât take a break.
once again, happy birthday isat. youâve ruined my life and i wouldnât have it any other way (silly).
also, on an actual serious note, this little timeloop game has genuinely changed my life for the better? you guys are probably sick of hearing it at this point (or maybe not, i donât talk about myself That Much. i hope), but i was practically a ghost for about 2 years before joining this fandom. itâs a little surreal to suddenly have friends (plural!!!) and people who Care about me, or even know i exist, honestly. itâs weird!! in a good way!!!
i donât think i wouldâve ever come back to social media if this community wasnât so welcoming. iâve met a lot of really great people through this game!!! so, uh, thank you isat, i guess. hereâs to another year.
#marshdoodles#isat#in stars and time#isat spoilers#also for full transparency. the sadness death redraw is effectively just a trace job. iâm not super happy with it because of thag#but i think i would be Killed if i tried to redo it. i dunno. maybe ill try to change it when i do sadnesses. maybe not.#besides that GOD im really happy with how these turned out#bigfrin was a last minute addition but i think he turned out fantastic#bonnieâs special attack isnât my Favorite but i think it turned out pretty well considering the Struggle#gggod. trying to make a heavily foreshortened pose that still feels dynamic is really hard. how did id5 do this.#also donât. worry about the Extra custom sprites thatâre in there. iâm not planning anything.#happy isatversary everyone.#i blow away in the wind
783 notes
¡
View notes
Text
content includes: female reader, drunk reader + mentions of alcohol, modern + non curse au sukuna, established relationship, unnamed friends, reader makes one (1) dick sucking joke, reader dips fries into shakes because sheâs elite like that, he carries reader
Itâs half past midnight when he comes to pick you up. Your face sours as soon as you see him, taking an instinctive step back.
âNuh uh,â you say, wagging a finger back and forth in his face as he scowls. âItâs girlâs night. No men allowedâweâve been over this!â
âAs if I wanna join your stupid girlâs night,â he scoffs. Sukuna is tired. (Of you). Itâs too late at night to be worrying about what ditch youâre going to end yourself up in after lord knows how many drinks, so regrettably, he takes matters into his own hands.
Itâs a good thing he does, too, he thinks with a flare of his nostril as he eyes the drunk, mess of a woman thatâs supposed to be your ride home. Designated driver my ass, he all but grumbles under his breath.
âHeyââ he looks over to the side with an irritated flick of his eyes as a hand smacks his shoulder. Your friend (in not better condition than you) levels him with a snarky look before she hisses, âYou heard her! Itâs girlâs night. Go away.â
Sukuna ignores herâbecause, well, thatâs what he always does anyway. She talks far too much to be considered a normal amount, and he doesnât like the shrill sound of her voice. Instead, he turns to you, gives you a firm, scolding look before he grunts, âWe are going home. Now.â
You seem to catch onto the stern tone of his voice because within seconds, youâre slumping against him as you whine, âFine,â with a pout. âMean.â
âYeah?â He snorts, âYou know whatâs meaner? Nasty men who find girls passed out in the middle of the streets. Now letâs go. Weâre going homeâall of you.â
A chorus of whines and petty insults makes him want to grab a drink himselfâbeing inebriated seems like the only way your friends are tolerable, but as annoying as they are, he refuses to leave them here wasted.
So he does the noble thing, and sacrifices his ear drums as they play whatever stupid pop song is trending on the radio at full volume down the streets, heads sticking out of the windows and screaming the lyrics out to innocent passerbyâs.
Sukuna is just a guy. Not the best, most chivalrous or charitable guy, maybeâbut just a guy, all the same. Heâs not done anything wrong to deserve this torture. Heâs been nothing but a kind (usually) boyfriend that loves you unconditionally (most of the time), supports you wholeheartedly (when it suits him), listens to your problems (if heâs in the mood), and makes you feel special (as long as it doesnât inconvenience him).
Still, heâs stuck basically being an uber driverâfor free, no lessâto your ungrateful, bratty, obnoxious friends that arenât pretty enough to enjoy your company in the first place. They donât even thank him when they get out as he drops them off one by one to their homes, opting to say goodbye to you as if youâre the one who pays for the gas in his car.
Finally, the last of your friends (who he likes to consider nuisances) leaves, freeing him of anymore radio pop songs and unnaturally loud giggles.
He grumbles as you ask, âCan we get milkshakes?â
âNo.â
âPlease?â You whine, âI want strawberry.â
âThatâs great,â he says sarcastically, âThe answerâs still no.â
âPlease, please, please, Kuna? Iâll suck your dick on the drive thereââ
âJesus, whatâs the matter with you?â He hisses, fighting back flushed cheeks as he glares at you once the car rolls to a stop at a red light.
Usually, heâs the one making such lewd comments and getting under your skinâbut lacking in sobriety is seriously forcing the two of you to switch roles. Heâs starting to wonder if maybe he should be nicer to youâyou deal with a lot. (Not that heâs mean. He considers himself a pretty generous boyfriend).
âIâll even pay,â you offer.
âYou didnât bring a wallet, so it looks like Iâll have to pay,â he says blandly.
You grin, giving him an innocent smile as you excitedly ask, âSo thatâs a yes?â
âAre you going to be quiet if I say yes?â He clicks his teeth in thinly-veiled irritation.
You grin, nodding enthusiastically.
Well, he thinks bitterly, so much for no more pit stops.
Itâs not long until heâs pulling into the drive-thru of the nearest fast food joint, rolling his window down to order your stupid, late night request.
âWeâll take one strawberry milkshake, please,â he says gruffly.
âAnything else?â Comes the tired reply of whoever is taking his order.
âNoââ
âAnd large fries, please!â You lean over him to shout out the window and make sure the poor worker hears you. Sukuna glares, (gently) pushing you back into your seat as he hisses, âPut your seatbelt on! And you asked for a milkshake, not a damn meal.â
âFries arenât a meal,â you huff, âAnd theyâre good dipped in the shake. You canât have one without the other.â
âNoââ
âIâll scream that Iâm being kidnapped,â you warn, âI want my fries.â
âFucking fine,â he throws his hands up, exasperatedly caving to your request because, yeah, having some drunk, half-conscious woman in his front seat screaming bloody murder about being abducted at two a.m. is not a good look to a stranger that doesnât know any better. âOne strawberry milkshake and large fucking fries and thatâs it,â he growls to the other person through the drive-thru speaker.
Itâs not the poor employeeâs fault, and he knows it, but heâs too tired and sleep-deprived to care about his snarky attitude.
âItâll be ready at the window,â the man speaks tiredly, completely unphased.
âYay!â You squeal.
Itâs a pretty bothersome task to have to stop the car five minutes after receiving the food just to open the lid of your cup for you so that you can dip your fries into your milkshake easier, but he figures itâs better than a tiring drive home. Or worse, a spill all over his car seats at your own attempt.
He glances over at you wearily as he finally (hopefully) starts to drive home, watching as you dip your french fries into your frozen drink and happily eat away. He crinkles his eyes at the combination.
Heâll never understand peopleâs unnatural obsession with pairing anything remotely salty and sweet together.
âMy friends think youâre weird,â you hum, taking a handful of fries to your mouth as you say between chewing, âThey say youâre intense. Like, scary intense. But I told them, thatâs just his face.â
Finally, a small smile cracks on his face, breaking through the grumpy, tired exterior. He snorts, shaking his head. âDrunk you has way too much to say.â
âDrunk me is honest,â you retort, clutching your fries to your chest as you huff, âNow Iâm not sharing my fries anymore.â
âYou werenât going to anyway,â he rolls his eyes.
Finally, his car pulls into a familiar parking spot, just outside of your shared home as he parks and turns to you. You giggle at him before humming, âHowâd you know?â
âBecause you never do,â he rolls his eyes.
âThatâs because this relationship is 50/50! You buy the food, and I eat it.â
âYeah?â He snorts, shaking his headâstill, thereâs something endearing about the way you clutch your fries close to your chest, as if guarding them with your life. He leans over, snatching one easily anyway, smirking in amusement when you gasp and pout at the gesture.
âHey! Thatâs mine!â
âYeah, whatever,â he grunts, fighting back a fond grin before he asks, âLetâs go. Weâre going in.â
With that, he comes around to your side of the car, pulling you out and hoisting you up to carry you bridal style as he marches over to the front door. Sighing happily, you admire his face as he walks.
âThanks,â you murmur.
He raises a brow, mildly shocked. âFor?â
âFor bringing me home. Same time next week?â
He chuckles, pressing a soft, affectionate kiss to your forehead. âAbsolutely not. No more girlâs nights with those shit shows.â
#writing tag#sukuna x reader#ryomen sukuna x reader#sukuna x you#ryomen sukuna x you#sukuna fluff#ryomen sukuna fluff#jjk x reader#jujutsu kaisen x reader#jjk x you#jujutsu kaisen x you#jjk fluff#jujutsu kaisen fluff
663 notes
¡
View notes
Text
đ operation dispatch (chan x idol!reader)
chan has been trying his hardest to get the two of you into dating rumors. it's not really working the way he wants it to.
⊠established relationship, f!idol!reader, pet names, cussing, crack & fluff. an expansion from the 'svt reacts to idol!reader having dating rumors' verse. more content under the cut. âď¸ dedicating this to @cxffecoupx! ⥠+ author's note below.
November 27, 2024 at 9:56 PM
DINO'S Operation Dispatch đş
⯠copy ending fairy ⯠take similar photos ⯠visit same place ⯠couple jewelry??? too much??? ⯠couple phone case ⯠make her my lockscreen?????????????? orrr ⯠mention in interview (maybe too much?) ⯠stare suuuuuuper long at award show. ⯠same hair color â lovestagram â matching clothes â mention her music â weverse â allude to being Takenâ˘
for dino. @ď¸mahalkongdino not to sound like that dinonara who got sniped off the platform but . with dino's new hair color...? i see the Vision đ¨ 34 âł 203 ⥠781
ESQUIRE INTERVIEW EXCERPT #ëë
¸ #DINO
đŹ what is your ideal type? 𦦠it seems trivial, but i know i can be a lot. have you seen the movie 'set it up'? there's a line there where one of the characters says, 'you like because, and you love despite.' i think i'm well-liked by my members and by carat, which i'm grateful for. but my type would be someone who can love me despite some of my qualities.
đŹ and what do you think are those qualities? 𦦠i don't think it would benefit me to divulge that. [laughs] alright, alright, i'll give one. honestly, i think i'm a bit greedy. not in a 'i-can't-share' way. more like, 'i want success. i want good luck.' and, when it comes to it, i know that i will want a good love, too. i wouldn't be able to settle for less.
yourusername ⢠30m ⍠DINO - 'Wait'
⥠đ¨ ⣠yourusername this unquestionable feeling View all 737 comments
darl.ngyou IS THAT LEE FUCKING CHANNNN idbiluhoshi Y'all????? A wholeass hard launch out of nowhere????? meaniezklub Guys what if they're just friends cxffeecoupx can somebody please inform that one dino fan acct on twitter who practically manifested this omg
with love, kae â when i first did the larger text imagine, i already had some idea that i would very likely expand on chan's verse. it just so happened that ris and her brilliant, brilliant mind!!!, also inboxed me about the very same thing ´âĄ` so ris.. this 1's for u <3..
#dino x reader#dino smau#lee chan x reader#dino fluff#svt smau#seventeen smau#svt x reader#seventeen x reader#svt fluff#seventeen fluff#svt imagines#seventeen imagines#ââ áľáľ ⌠mine#[ lee chan i'd lay down my life for you ]#[ did this while trying (and failing) at NIKI ticketing ]#[ btw i fought the formatting of this for 30 MINUTES so if anything is off. just Avert your eyes ]
583 notes
¡
View notes
Note
because I just binged read all the office frenemies au James, can we pleaseeee have like them interacting after they've been on the coffee date, or just them dating in general? and maybe r teasing James instead of James teasing r? tqqq
âJames begs for a kiss, and youâre almost caught. fem, 1.2k
You thought your life was over the second you kissed James Potter. You kissed him, you went first; the second you lifted your chin, you were giving him power over you he didnât have before. You were confessing that all your arguments and quipping had turned from real annoyance to fondness.Â
You thought heâd hold it against you. You didnât really consider that he might enjoy being kissed by you.Â
âOh, please,â he says, pushing across his sofa to hold your arm, âplease, donât be angry with me. Iâm sick of you frowning, and I usually love it when you frown.âÂ
âIâm not kissing you,â you say.Â
âPlease,â he says, dark strands of hair falling across his forehead. You can see your face in his glasses if you concentrate, but his eyes distract you, their pupils brown as the slick bark of a sycamore.Â
âThe last time you brought me here, James, you laid me out on the sofa like aâ like we were in some sort of dirty movie, and Sirius nearly caught us. You know he and Remus are already suspicious of us.âÂ
âThey arenât, they arenât,â he insists, his hand spreading warmly across your stomach, âI told them weâre just friends now.âÂ
âAnd they didnât believe it.âÂ
âWell, no, but thatâs because everyoneâs under the impression you might kill me one day.âÂ
âHow do they know youâre not gonna try and kill me?â you ask, enjoying the feeling of his pinky skirting adoringly under your ribs. âYouâre the boy.â
âDonât be sexist.âÂ
âDonât be obtuse.âÂ
James is an aching sort of pretty. If you think about it, frenemies or otherwise, you never for a moment thought heâd want you. Heâs made his jokes, but heâs said things with sincerity that are too much to ignore. You can be so lovely.Â
You find that you want him to think it again.Â
He looks down at your stomach, teasing the creases of your t-shirt between his fingers.Â
âOkay,â you say quietly, raising your hand to his ear. You draw a line down the shell of it and catch the lobe under your index finger. âLetâs kiss, then.âÂ
âSeriously?â he asks. His head comes up fast with enthusiasm.Â
âYeah, I think so. Just donât push me over again.âÂ
âDonât say it like that, I didnât push you, I just laid on top of you,â he says, bringing his hand to your cheek, where he holds you with all the tenderness of a practised lover, like heâs known you for years, âand you seemed to like it, Iâll have you know.âÂ
âJames,â you whisper, thinking, if heâs gonna play it that way, âIââ You enthuse your tone with a timid sort of longing, which isnât hard to procure. âI liked it, of course I did, Iâve never felt like this before, I just donât wantâŚâ
He rubs your cheek gently. His eyes fill with a sorriness that nearly makes you feel bad for messing with him. âWeâre being careful, yeah? Sirius wonât find out. No one will until we want them to.â
âWho says I want them to?âÂ
He doesnât fill with anger nor annoyance; his eyes light with delight at your regular tone. âYouâre such a devious, wicked girl,â he says, brushing a line up your cheek with his thumb. âYou had me, then.âÂ
âDonât I always?âÂ
He gives a self-deprecating scoff. âIâd rather you didnât think so, but yes.âÂ
âI really donât want Sirius to find out.âÂ
âHeâs not home for hours,â James says easily. âKnowing that, would you like to have a kiss now?âÂ
âI already asked for one.âÂ
He hums his agreement against your lips. You squeeze your eyes closed at the sudden connection, relaxing as his hand works behind you to hook you in. âSorry for the delay,â he murmurs, kissing the corner of your mouth, the very bottom of your chin, and your neck, twice, before returning to your lips. They part under his, and the kiss turns to much more than softness youâd shared on the steps outside the office. This is hot, and inviting, and searching for something as he leans his weight against you. He doesnât push. You knew he wouldnât.Â
You hold his shirt as he kisses you. Things are so new between you that you arenât always sure what he wants you to do, where he needs your hands, but he doesnât complain. Doesnât make it feel like a big deal. His hand roves from your back to your hand on his chest and guides it behind him. âAlright?â he asks between kisses, nose pressed to yours.Â
âMm,â you say.Â
âYeah? You sure?âÂ
âIâm fine, Iâmâ Iâm great.âÂ
âYouâre brilliant,â he says warmly, nudging your nose up with his to press your lips together loosely. Just loose, nothing kisses, your heart like a bruise deep in your chest as he draws you nearer.Â
You decide to be lovely as heâd thought of you and hold him with both arms. Your fingers flirt with the edge of his shirt, fingertips finding a slip of bare skin.Â
âYouâre so handsome,â you whisper.Â
You canât see him, but you can hear how he takes it. âYouâ fucking hell. Fucking hell, youâre beautiful.â He tips your head back. You have the feeling he wants you to open your eyes, but you keep them closed, and eventually he leans in to kiss the soft spot under your jaw.Â
You let out a sigh. Somehow, Jamesâ kiss gets even gentler.Â
Heâs kissed down to the collar of your shirt when a clattering sound echoes down the hall, the weight of the front door hitting a radiator as two giggles follow. âRemus!â Sirius hisses, âyouâll take it off the wall!â
âSorry!â Remus says.Â
You and James spring apart so hard it makes the sofa squeak.Â
âJames?â Remus calls.Â
âWeâre in here!â James calls back.Â
You widen your eyes. James is far less shocked, neatening your shirt and throwing a blanket from the back of the sofa over your legs. He shuffles across the seats and grabs the remote just in time to click play on the TV. The door opens, and James quickly straightens his glasses, the lenses smudged with skin.Â
âHello,â Remus says happily, Sirius poking his head in behind him.Â
âHi,â Sirius says, giving you both a far more suspicious look. âWhat are you doing here, sweetheart?âÂ
You know instantly that whatever you say will be better believed than James. âJames bragged about having that new Quiet Place movie on the telly, and I knew he didnât, so now weâre watchingâ what?âÂ
âUh, antiques roadshow,â James says.Â
You roll your eyes. âWeâre watching antiques roadshow.âÂ
âRight,â Sirius says.Â
âI thought you had the DVD?â Remus asks.Â
âI did! I just donât know where it is!â James cries.Â
Remus raises his eyebrows. âWanna get some dinner, then?âÂ
James deflates in relief, sending you a completely unsubtle smile. âYou hungry, shorts?âÂ
You canât believe you just let him kiss you. That you keep letting him. Heâs never gonna be able to keep your secret from his friends. âYeah, I guess so.âÂ
â
office frenemies au
#james potter#james potter x reader#james potter x fem!reader#james potter x y/n#james potter x you#james potter fic#james potter fluff#james potter blurb#james potter drabble#james potter imagine#james potter fanfic#james potter fanfiction#james potter scenario#james potter oneshot#the marauders#marauders era#marauders
568 notes
¡
View notes
Text
á´ÉŞĘĘ ęąá´á´á´á´Ę á´É´á´
ęą | â.ââ
á´á´ÉŞĘɪɴɢęą. brothers bestfriend! heeseung x fem!reader
ęąĘÉ´á´á´ęąÉŞęą. You were sleeping when jay started banging on your door ây/n heeseung is gonna stay with us for the summerâ. Lee heesung, your brothers best friend and the boy youâve had a crush on since you saw him 5 years ago in your living room.
|| á´Ąá´Ęá´
á´á´á´É´á´. 38k (dk how I did that sorry)
ɢá´É´Ęá´. smut, brothers bestfriend.
á´Ąá´Ęɴɪɴɢęą. nsfw! smut lmk if thereâs anything else.
(hii this is the first fic Iâve ever written, I obviously have a long way to go lmao but I hope you like it. This was written with really less detail and not too many complications something simple I guess. There might be a few spelling mistakes or the paragraph formation is messed up so bear with me on that đđť. Since this is the first time Iâve written itâs not really fully âfic codedâ you could say Ig but Iâll learn in time, it could be different writing wise from a proper fic.Anyways I hope you enjoy and if you have any questions regarding this or anything else lmk.)
ââââââââââââââââââââ
Youâve never really talked to Heeseung much. He comes over a lot but jay doesnât let you hang out with them much, it doesnât really bother you much but what did bother you was when jay started banging on your door to wake you up on a weekend at 8am to tell you â Y/N!! Heeseung is gonna stay with us for the summerâ
You couldnât wait for summer break to come but now youâre grateful thereâs still a week left.
you RAN to karinaâs house which thankfully was next door. She was obviously still asleep.
âKarinaaa!! WAKE UPPPâ you say while pulling the blinds up, ây/n itâs 8am please I havenât slept all nightâ karina said while pulling the blanket over her face
âI need to tell you something. â you looked at her with a very serious face waiting for her to sit up âyes y/n goodmorning to you tooâ you smiled at her and murmured goodmorning back âok get this jay said Lee heeseung is gonna stay at ours for the summer..the WHOLE summer!â You let out a sigh you didnât know you were holding. You waited for her to say something She looked at you like you ate her cat or something, she really is cranky in the morning âcan you say something why are you looking at me like thatâ she took a breath in and out. Oh no u hate when she does that, it feels like sheâs going to pounce on you ây/n..is this what you wanted to tell me so badly to wake me up at 8am on a Sunday?â She said in a calm and low tone. You just looked at her as u blinked slowly and nodded slowly, she wasnât having any of it ây/n itâs not a big deal itâs just heesung and jay is best friends with him you literally see him everydayâ well that was true but she didnât know about the crush you had on him, you just couldnât bring yourself to tell her.âThis is gonna be a looongg summerâ you thought to yourself.
It was the first day of summer.
As you woke up the golden sunlight peeked though your blinds, casting stripes across the room. Making you think âitâs finally summerâ you smile to yourself. You yawn as you watch the dust particles flying around the window.
You threw your blanket away from you and went to freshen up exited for the summer. You tie your bikini around your hips and back, then throw on an oversized shirt and some jean shorts.
You walked down the stairs each step filled with excitement, thinking about everything you were gonna do this summer with karina, going to places weâve never been or just hanging out in your backyard. You took a deep sniff smelling waffles from the kitchen. The smell of the batter, the sound of the waffle maker, and fresh maple. You ran to the kitchen to see jay cooking. You love your brothers cooking especially his waffles itâs something he only makes it in the summer. âJayy youâre making waffles?!!!!???!â You said giggling
and grinning, doing a silly dance âwhen I met you in the summerrrrr~~â you sang as a smile spreads on jays face. He hums with you.
âSit down y/n 5 minutes moreâ he said looking back at you raising his eyebrows. You were walking around the wall to sit on the counter and suddenly you saw heesung sitting on the chair âWHA-â you were totally surprised and feeling like an idiot since you just sang and danced and HEESEUNG SAW YOU. You completely forgot he was supposed to be here.
You feel your cheeks heat up as you try to laugh the embarrassment off. You looked up at heeseung who was already looking at you up and down. With a slight smirk on his face he tilted his head to the side. âWhatâs up?â
he said. His tone is relaxed and raspy. You feel so small in his presence , you feel your cheeks burn and u look up at him âhey I heard youâre staying here for the summerâyou say trying to relax your voice, you sit down on the chair next to him and look up at him waiting for an answer âmhmâ thatâs all he says. You think if youâre going see him the whole summer you need to get to know him better atleast. You tilt your head and ask,âCan I ask why?â Your eyebrows raise in curiosity and a gentle smile forms on your lips showing youâre genuinely interested, before he said anything jay came up to the counter and sets the waffles in front of you with a light frown he glances at you and says ây/n donât bother himâ his eyes meet yours and he slightly smiles. Heeseung takes a waffles and puts it on his plate, jay walks away to get the ice cream he looks over at you but you were already looking at him, you look away âim moving to New York after the summer cause of my dads workâ he says,his tone relaxed. He shrugs, his eyes glancing away for a moment. âheâs already there so Iâm staying here till I leaveâ he lets out a light laugh and takes a bite of the waffle. You look at him, your heart skipping a beat at the news. A mix of surprise and a touch of sadness washes over your face. âNew York, huh? Thatâs a big change,â you say, trying to keep your tone light despite the flutter of emotions inside. You bite your lip, thinking about why you feel sad you barely know him?!. âAre you excited about it?â you ask, your eyes searching his, hoping to catch a glimpse of his feelings. He shrugs a bit. âIâm not really worriedâ he says nonchalantly. Not wanting to show too much emotion you take a bite of the waffle âoh okayâ you said kind of sad but you think jay might be really sad since theyâve been best friends since they were 10.
Itâs been about 2 weeks since you talked to heeseung. Even though youâre living together thereâs not much interaction between you too, well there are moments when youâre going out in your prettiest clothes and he undresses you with his eyes. You try to ignore it as much as you can, you canât betray jay like that no matter how much you want to right?
Eventually you decide invite Karina over and take a swim in the pool. The cool water feels refreshing, and the familiar scent of chlorine surrounds you, bringing a sense of comfort. As you float on your back, Karina asks you a shocking question âdo you like heesungâshe says looking at you with her eye brows raised and crossed arms. âKarin-â you pause cause heesung is standing at the backyard door by the pool. Did he hear what she said? Youâre just looking at him with a confused expression. Karina looks back and smirks to herself. You canât help but say something,itâs getting awkward âhey Heeseung do u wanna swim?â You ask, Karina noticed how your voice sounds way different from when you both talk. He scratches the back of his neck and says âyea can I?â Looking between Karina and you. You try to communicate with Karina through your eyes âofc you canâ she says with a smirk on her face as she looks at you, you look at her with a confused face as you raise your eye brow asking what she was doing. Heeseung walks towards the pool and slowly with a confidence smirk he pulled off his shirt, his toned body revealing itself to you. You flinched at the sight, you thought how it would feel if he was on top of you and you touch his toned abs..
Suddenly water hit you and you fell of your floaty into the water âwhat the hell!â You looked at Karina thinking she did that but you heard deep chuckles coming from the side, it was Heeseung âsorry didnât mean to do that, just divingâ he shrugs and looks you up and down like heâs ready to undress you âoh yeah btw thereâs a party here tonightâ he said. You looked at him in confusion since your parents are home. He continues âoh um jay told me to tell you, your parents have to go to a weddingâ you tell him youâre going inside to talk to your mom and jay. You get up and wrap yourself in a towel, by now you think heesung has a staring problem.
You take a shower, change and head down with Karina.
You see jay helping your mom pack you walk into the room âmom where are you goingâ you ask since everyone knows except you.
âY/n honey me and your dad have a wedding to attend itâs in the next town so weâll be back in the morningâ you tell her to be safe, you look at Karina and smile looking forward to the party. âJay take care of y/n and donât do anything stupidâ she looks between you and jay, you put your hands up.
As soon as your parents leave jay picks up his phone and starts calling people over. Since it is your last year why not have a party.
You walk up to jay as heâs wearing his watch he looks over at you âsoo who did you inviteâ you ask out of curiosity since he didnât tell you about the party which is in YOUR house. He looks at you smiling âanyone and everyoneâ he winks. You wonder whatâs gonna happen tonight your head already hurts. You werenât really into parties, just going if your friends invited you or when you need to get your mind off something. But tonight itâs someone. Jay looks at you thinking to yourself and says ây/n Iâll keep an eye out for you tonightâ you already know what that means. Jay isnât much of an over protective brother but when it comes to his friends or guys in general getting involved with you, he hates it. Since theyâre not someone he fully trusts.
As you get ready in your room, the sounds of the party downstairs filter through the door. Muffled laughter and music. Making your heart race with anticipation. You can hear the clinking of glasses and the cheerful chatter. As you finish your final touches, someone knocks on your door âcome in!â
You look at the door as it opens and itâs heeseung hes wearing a black Prada button up with black pants he looks. Your heart skips a beat you blink, he stands there effortlessly attractive. You canât help but admire his face shape the way his body fits in his clothes, how his jawline is shaped perfectly his eyes are captivating.
Closing the door behind him he walks towards you with a knowing smirk leans down to your ear and whispers âbaby youâre staringâ. Youâre taken aback, you take a step back but he still walk towards you. âI think youâre the one with a staring problem heeâ you say fixing the collar of his shirt, heâs chuckles shocked by the sudden nickname and confidence. He presses you again your closet behind you and he slowly puts his thumb over your lips. Before he can do anything else the door opens and you push him away.
Itâs jay he looks between both of you âuhm Lee letâs go Jakeâs calling youâ he says while looking at you. You feel trapped not knowing what to do. Heeseung winks at you secretly and heads back down. Jay raises his eye brow ây/n what the fuck donât you remember what I told youâ he says in a low and angry voice though you can tell heâs hurt. You try to say something with your heart racing, you try to scan jays face but he just walks away.
You walk down after fixing your lipstick. You spot Karina with some of your old classmates and join them.
The party is in full swing when you find yourself in the kitchen, pouring drinks for your friends. Suddenly, Heeseung appears beside you, leaning against the counter with that trademark smirk. âNeed any help?â he asks, his voice low and teasing. You nod, trying to ignore the way your stomach flips at his proximity.
As the night progresses, the atmosphere becomes more charged. Laughter and music fill the air, but you canât shake the feeling that something is about to change. You catch Heesung watching you from across the room, his gaze intense, and you feel a pull toward him that you canât resist.
Later, as the party continues, you find yourself in a quieter corner of the house, away from the noise. Heeseung follows you, the tension between you crazy. âItâs crazy how weâre both here together,â he says, stepping closer. The air feels thick with unspoken words, and before you know it, he puts his hand on your waist leaning in, his lips brushing against yours in a soft, tentative kiss.
Your heart races as you kiss him back, the kiss getting deeper. The world around you fading away. You know you shouldnât be doing this, but it feels too right to stop. Just as the kiss deepens, you hear your brother laughing, pulling you back to reality.
You break apart, breathless, and heesung looks at you with a mix of desire and uncertainty. âWe canât do this baby,â he whispers, but the way he looks at you says otherwise. The party goes on, but in that moment, everything changes. You kiss him again and deepen the kiss.
As you pull away from the kiss, your heart races,his forehead on yours. You glance toward the living room where the party is still in full swing. You can hear your brother laughing with friends, completely unaware of the moment that just unfolded between you and heesung.
âMaybe we should go back,â you say, your voice barely above a whisper, still feeling the warmth of his lips on yours. Heeseung nods, but thereâs still hesitation in his eyes.
âAre you sure?â he asks, searching your face for confirmation. His hands go up and down your waist. The last thing you both want to do is betray jay, but you canât help it after liking him for so long.
âI donât know,â you admit, biting your lip. âBut we canât let anyone see us like this.â You take a step back, trying to regain some composure, but heesung reaches out, gently pulling you back toward him.
âThen letâs keep it our little secret for now,â he suggests, a mischievous glint in his eyes. His hands back on your waist moving upwards. You nod, the thrill of secrecy making your heart race even faster. You both go back into the party agreeing on keeping this a secret.
As the night progresses, you and heeseung have moments together, glances across the room, whispered conversations in corners, and the occasional touch that sends sparks through your body. The chemistry between you is undeniable, but youâre also acutely aware of your brotherâs presence, and the potential consequences of your actions.
At one point, you find yourselves outside on the patio, where the sounds of the party fade into the background. The night sky is dotted with stars, and the cool breeze contrasts with the heat radiating between you.
âDo you think heâd be mad?â you ask, your voice barely above a whisper. Heeseungs expression softens as he considers your question.
âI donât know,â he replies honestly. âBut I donât want to hide this if it means something.â His words send a thrill through you, youâve wanted heesung for such a long time but the thought of your brotherâs reaction hangs in the back of your mind.
As everyone starts leaving itâs already 2am and jay is extremely drunk. You ask heesung to put him to bed.
Youâre sitting in on your bed still wearing your black mini dress when the door opens and closes with a bang. Itâs heesung heâs charging towards you suddenly he gets on top of you. Youâre just looking into his eyes looking for something but theyâre just filled with desire. As youâre about to say something he puts his lips on yours capturing them into a kiss.
It starts of slow, he sits against the headboard and you climb on top of him, your knees on the sides of his thighs. He pulls you in again for a deep kiss, he puts his hands on your waist tightening them. They way yours and his lips are moving next to each other feels unreal, he pulls you even closer towards him, you release low moans now needing him as close as possible. As the kiss gets heated you feel his tongue licking your self asking to go in, you let his tongue enter and explore your mouth he groans. He puts his hand on your zipper, you look at him and nod.
He quickly takes it off and looks at your perky boobs âso fucking sexy babyâ he looks like he wants to eat you. You gasp when he takes one of your nipples in his mouth âhee-â and swirls his tongue around,he gives the other one attention aswell taking it in his hands god. His hand goes down to your clothed core as he starts rubbing over it. âHee pleaseâ you cried out, âplease what pretty, say itâ he whispered
You moaned and squirmed against his hard cock, making him hiss âbaby u need to stop movingâ.
He laid you against your back and started placing kisses all over your neck and breasts making you breathe heavily. As he placed kisses all over your body he reached your wet core. He took his shirt off revealing his toned body you started kissing him everywhere until It all went too fast when you suddenly felt a hot wet sensation licking your pussy slow. Your eyes rolled back, feeling heeâs tongue going deep in your pussy and sucking on your bud. Your moans could no longer be held back, letting them out freely for everyone to hear.
âH-hee ah- wait!â You cried out feeling your orgasm coming faster than you thought since itâs been 2 minutes. Heeseung didnât stop, feeling your pussy tighten and open and before he knew it too, his tongue was getting covered by your juices. He licked his lips while looking at you, you thought you could look at him like this forever.
As he takes his pants off with his underwear you look at him surprised at how big he is. You gulped.
Heeseung notices your expression and smirks âyou ready baby?â You nod aggressively not wanting to wait another second.
He kissed you everywhere complimenting every little thing, he leaned over and positioned his dick at your whole and slowly pushed it in. âHEE! Fuckâ you moan, he thought you looked so pretty with your mascara running down your face because of him.
âFuck baby youâre so tightâ he groaned
You let out a ragged breath feeling him in you. He felt so big and you felt so full. Heesung looked at you asking if he could move âu-h you can moveâ heeseung nodded and moved slowly watching your face as you roll your eyes back in pleasure.
Thatâs when he started moving faster, you both were a moaing mess. Panting against each other.
Heeseung groaned feeling you squeeze against him, he could feel his orgasm coming.
You felt your orgasm coming as he went in and out âf-uck hee im cu-mingâ you moaned and closed your eyes as it came over.
Heeseung thrusting in deeper while you got off your high. He let out a raspy laugh.
You both were breathing heavily after he came and laid down with you. âthat was-â you said panting
âgreat. â heeseung looked at you and kissed you once more before he got up and got a towel from the bathrooms and cleaned you up before laying back down.
âHee?â You said laying down on his arm. âYeah baby?â He pulled you closer under the blanket âwhen will you leave for New York?â You said. Your voice not above a whisper, he looked at your sad expression and put a strand of hair behind your ear âI told my dad already im not leavingâhe said. You sat up holding the blanket to your chest, âwait really?!â You said smiling so big it hurt. âYea. â he said. Hugging you tightly. âI love you heeâ you said looking into his sparkly eyes as u pecked him on the cheek âI love you too babyâ. He kissed you back.
The sun was out ask you opened your eyes, you rubbed your eyes the memories of last night came flooding back into your mind and you couldnât believe that actually happened. A smile crept onto your face.
You felt heeseung holding you tightly by the waist. You shifted to look at him, he looked so pretty while sleeping as well. You started tracing his lips and his nose even his eyes. He started blinking and smiled âgoodmorningâ he said, his morning voice so raspy and attractive. âMorningâ you giggled and put your face into his neck.
You suddenly pulled back hearing your door open. ây/n wake uppp!â It was jay.
He stood there looking at both of you naked under the blanket.
He started blinking in disbelief.
Heeseung tried to cover you with his body which made you laugh.
You totally forgot you were in the same house as jay through all that.
Jay just walked out. You looked at heeseung confused why jay didnât punch anyone. You and heesung got dressed and went down to the kitchen to talk to jay.
You both sat on the chairs in front of the counter where jay was making breakfast.
You started âjay uh.. can we talkâ you felt like youâve betrayed your brother big time, your mind had a lot of things to say but you need to tell him the truth first.
Jay looked back at you with his eye brows furrowed he nodded letting you know to go on but before you could heeseung started talking âlook man im sorry it happened this way, I never wanted to hurt you or y/nâ he lets out heavy breathing.
You could see how hard this is for heeseung because this is his only one friendship he cares about.
Jay looks at him very angrily âif you didnât want to hurt me you shouldnât have done thisâ he said in a higher voice as he crossed his arms. You felt bad for heeseung for getting the blame âjay itâs not his fault I also wanted tooâ you say searching jays eyes for something but they were just empty ây/n I know and thatâs what I hate more, I told you so many times not t-â
You didnât let him finish and told him the truth. âI love himâ you say.
Heesung hold your hand and jay looks at heesung for an answer. âI love her aswellâ Heeseung says in a very straightforward and sincere tome. Jay turns his back, you both give him some time to think. He turns back and sets breakfast up he glances over to both of you âHeeseung you better treat her right or sheâll have to witness your funeralâ jay said while smiling as he hugged heesung. You looked at Jay with a smile âim sorry and thank youâ you hugged him back.
In the evening you invited Karina over for a barbecue your dad was hosting. You told her everything.
She was really happy for you.
After the barbecue ended all of you jumped into the pool.
Heeseung pulled you to him and gave you a peck on your lips he whispered âI love youâ you giggled and splashed water on him.
ââââââââââââââââââââ
Š won!!ez , 2024. do not copy, steal my stories
#enhypen smut#enhypen fic#enhypen x reader#heeseung#enhypen#enhypen hard hours#kpop#enha x reader#enha fics#enhypen hard thoughts#heesung imagines#heeseung smut#lee heeseung#lee heeseung x reader#heeseung hard thoughts
430 notes
¡
View notes
Note
Reader being Beth Meadâs little sister & is dating Leah. Beth finding them in a compromising position/situation (shagging) đ¤Łđ¤Ł feel like this would make a funny story
-
Beth has always been overprotective. Itâs in her nature, like her knack for nutmegging defenders or her inexplicable hatred of pineapple on pizza. Growing up, you couldnât so much as look at someone without Beth launching into her overbearing big-sister routine: âWhoâs that? What do they want? Do I need to have a word?â
So naturally, when you start dating Leah Williamsonâher teammate and captain of Englandâyou make a pact with her to keep it under wraps for a bit. Just until Beth gets used to the idea.
That was six months ago.
Which explains why youâre currently in Bethâs spare room, shirt on the floor, Leahâs hair sticking to her face, and your brain short-circuiting as the door slams open.
âWhat the actual fuck?â Bethâs voice slices through the air like a refereeâs whistle.
âBeth!â you shriek, scrambling for the duvet, which is already half-tangled around Leah.
âMead-o,â Leah starts, holding up her hands like sheâs negotiating a hostage situation, except sheâs also very much topless. âI can explainââ
âExplain what?!â Beth snaps, her face a mix of outrage and something dangerously close to amusement. âWhy youâre shagging my little sister in my house?â
âThis isnâtââ you start, but youâre not even sure where that sentence is going.
âThis isnât what?â Beth interrupts, arms crossed, one eyebrow arched in that infuriatingly smug way sheâs perfected over the years. âWhat it looks like? Because it looks like my friend is banging my sister on my spare bedâ
Leah winces. âDonât say âbangingââ
âSorry. Would you prefer I say âfornicatingâ? âGetting it onâ? âKnocking bootsâ?â
âBeth!â you yell, throwing a pillow at her, which she bats away with infuriating ease.
The room falls into a horrifically awkward silence. You can hear Leahâs breathing beside you, shallow and uneven, and somewhere in the distance, the hum of Bethâs washing machine hitting its spin cycle.
âHow long?â Beth finally asks, her tone softer now but no less accusatory.
âSix months,â Leah admits, sitting up and grabbing her shirt from the floor. âWe were going to tell youââ
âOh, were you?â Beth cuts her off, her voice dripping with sarcasm. âBefore or after I walked in on this absolute nightmare?â
âCan you not call my love life a nightmare?â you snap, pulling on your own hoodie.
âBaby, itâs her love life now too,â Leah mutters under her breath, which earns her a withering glare from Beth.
Beth sighs and pinches the bridge of her nose like sheâs trying to summon the strength not to kill either of you. âThis is mental. Fucking mentalâ
âBeth, come on,â you say, standing up and crossing the room to her. âItâs not like we planned for you to walk in on usâ
âOh, that makes it better, does it?â Beth fires back, but her tone is losing its edge.
Leah stands, hands stuffed in her pockets, looking more sheepish than youâve ever seen her. âBeth, look. I know this is⌠not ideal. But I love her. And I would never hurt her. You know thatâ
Beth stares at Leah for what feels like an eternity, then at you, then back at Leah. Finally, she sighs. âFine. But if I hear anythingââ
âYou wonât,â you both say in unison.
Beth shakes her head, muttering something about needing a drink, and leaves the room.
As the door closes, you collapse back onto the bed, groaning. âWell, that went wellâ
Leah snorts, climbing in beside you. âCouldâve been worseâ
âHow?â
âShe couldâve filmed it for blackmail.â
You shove her, but youâre laughing now, the tension broken.
Later, when youâre all sitting around the kitchen table, Beth pours herself a very large glass of wine and declares, âFor the record, I still think this is weirdâ
âNoted,â Leah says, raising her tea in mock salute.
âAnd donât think this means Iâm going easy on you at training,â Beth adds, pointing at Leah with a fork.
âWouldnât dream of it,â Leah replies, grinning.
And as deranged and mortifying as the whole thing was, you canât help but feel relieved. Because if Beth didnât truly care, she wouldnât be sitting here, threatening Leah with a fork.
423 notes
¡
View notes
Note
kissing u for giving me this idea cause I love frat daddy as stepbro!rafe! what if reader is 18 but in her last year of high school (I know even with age of majority thatâs still kinda icky but itâs the only way this scenario would workđŤŁ) so when rafeâs away for his first year at college before the events of s1, she knows itâs wrong but sheâs always worried and jealous of what he could be doing there or what other girls he could be seeing, especially when she sees his and his frat brothersâ instagram pictures. he doesnât always get back to her texts or calls, and even though she has needs too, she feels guilty for hooking up with any of her friends or trying to date to distract herself. so when he comes home for the holidays, sheâs all mad at him and pushes him away and they get all angsty and he apologizes because you were always willing to wait for him and his approval and with him being as nasty as he is he has to remind you that you come first because âyouâre my sisterâđŤ â¨
â stepbro!rafe is away for his first year at college
warnings: stepcest, reader is 18 + rafe is 19, indent is a flashback, jealous!reader, mention of hooking up w jj, choking, hair pulling, spanking, mirror sex, degrading, praise, gagging, piv, unprotected sex, creampie, 18+ mdni !
a/n: i hope it's ok that i tweaked a few things such as rafe apologizing & reader graduated high school but doesnât go to college cause she isn't sure what she wants to do!
âgonna miss you,â you frown into your stepbrotherâs chest, hugging him tightly. he rested his chin on the top of your head, âiâll miss you too, but hey, iâll be home for the holidays, and iâm only a phone call away. you could call me or text me anytime, iâll make sure to get back to you when i can, alright?â.
when rafe left for college, he responded to you when he could, just like he said he would. talking to him nearly every day almost made it feel like he wasnât hours away from home. however, a month passed, and you started to hear less from him until your calls and texts were unanswered. at first, you assumed you werenât hearing from him because of how busy he may have been with classes, and it wasnât until you came across instagram posts from him and his fraternity brothers that he was too busy partying to get back to you.
it was his first year at college, and you knew you shouldnât be upset; you had no right to be. especially when it was the only time he had freedom away from home, specifically from ward. it didn't stop you from missing rafe; you couldnât help but think about what else he could be doing, and no matter how much you tried, knowing it was wrong, your mind started to wander over who he could be with.
when two more months had passed and still no communication from rafe, you sought out a distraction through jj maybank, who was unknowingly helping you take your mind off your stepbrother. the more time you had spent with jj, the less you thought about rafe and the promise of not running to anyone that wasn't him.
the promise you made was pushed into the back of your mind until one night, as you were about to sneak out of the house to see the blonde pogue, you received an incoming call from rafe. you could feel the guilt consuming you the longer you stared at his name, itching to answer. but your bitterness got the best of you, your finger tapping 'decline' before quietly leaving your house, not knowing rafe was calling to tell you he'd be home for the holiday.
a week later and yet another late night with jj, you tip-toed up the stairs, ensuring not to wake anyone up. just as you were about to reach your bedroom, you froze in your spot, looking like a deer in headlights, when the door to the room across from yours swung open. "sneaking back in?", his hand encircled your wrist, pulling you into his room and shutting the door behind you. ârafe, what are you doing here?â your brows furrow, more than confused as to why he was home.
âmissed you, princess," his hands slid up your waist, walking you back until your lower back pressed against his dresser, "if you had answered when i called, you wouldâve known i was coming home for the holidays.â.
your palms pressed at his firm chest, pushing him away when he started peppering kisses along your jaw. "what? what's wrong?" rafe asks, "donât tell me youâre upset cause i made you promise not to go to anyone else while i was away on campus.â.
âi can't be upset over that when iâve been seeing jj,â the words rolled off your tongue with ease, âi don't know why it matters anyway when you've been ignoring me for the past few months, probably too busy sleeping around with sorority girls every weekendâ.
rafeâs nostrils flared the second jj's name slipped from your mouth, âwhat did you just say?â he gritted his teeth, removing his hand from your waist to grab your throat. âwhat?â you bat your eyes innocently, âdon't act all innocent, you've been fucking around with maybank, huh?â.
"what happened to being my good girl? guess your poor, needy little pussy couldn't handle being empty for a few months, hm?" rafe snickered, "and now you wanna push me away all 'cause i've been too busy?".
your mouth gaped open to speak, only for him to cut you off, "is that why you're pushing me away, acting like you didn't miss me and your panties aren't soaking wet right now? ".
rafe spun you around to face the mirror of his dresser, bending you over. his large, warm hands slip under your skirt, pushing the article of clothing around your waist. his fingers hooked into the elastic of your panties, pulling them down to pool around your ankles. "step out of them," he ordered, delivering a sharp smack to the fat of your ass; when you didn't oblige, "don't make me tell you twice.".
rafe bent down, grabbing your panties before standing back up. his hand reached around, cupping your jaw, your lips parting when his fingers dug into your skin as he squeezed your cheeks. rafe shoved the silk material into your mouth and his lips brush against the shell of your ear, "you want an apology? fine, here's your apology.".
his free hand dipped between your legs, chuckling as he ran his fingers through your slick folds. âiâm sorry, princessâŚâ he cooed, extending his thumb to rub circles to your clit, pulling a soft moan from you.
a desperate whine bubbled in your throat at the loss of friction on your puffy clit, your heart racing in anticipation at the sound of fabric rustling behind you. rafe nudged your thighs further apart with his knee, slotting himself between your legs. his palm rested on the small of your back as you squirmed under him, feeling the thick head of his cock sliding up and down your folds.
he grabbed a fistful of your hair, yanking your head back to make you look at him in the reflection, watching your eyes roll back as his thick cock stretches you deliciously, âsorry that my poor girl was so fuckinâ needy to the point she had to run to a pogue of all people.â.
âshitâŚmissed being buried deep in this sweet cunt,â rafe groaned, "guess i gotta ruin this tight little hole; make sure you don't go runnin' back to jj, huh?" he taunted, slowly pulling back, leaving just the tip of his cock inside you.
"don't worry, by the time i'm done with you, all that pretty little head and pussy is gonna think about is how much she missed and ached for my dick," rafe sucked his teeth, your body jolting forward, biting down on the pair of panties stuffed in your mouth as he slammed himself back into your willing cunt.
your hands grip the top of his dresser, eyes barely staying open. a loud, muffled yelp forces its way through the flimsy silk fabric stuffed in your mouth when rafe harshly tugged at the roots of your hair, "did i say you could close your eyes? keep 'em open, want you to watch me fuck you like the needy little cockwhore you are.".
rafe removed his hand from your hair, snaking it around your throat to hold your head upright. he buried his face into the crook of your neck, biting and sucking hard enough to leave bruises on your flesh. he leaned forward, putting all his weight onto you and pressing his chest to your back, "this s'all you wanted, yeah? just wanted to be stuffed full of my cock again?".
drool soaked through the silk as his cock pounded into you relentlessly. you grabbed onto his arm, struggling to keep your eyes open, and your nails bite into his skin as the tip of his cock repeatedly hits your cervix. rafeâs eyes flicker to look at the two of you in the mirror, âlook at how pretty you look takinâ my dick,â he praises.
âcame way too many fuckinâ times to the thought of youâŚbeen craving feeling your pussy around my cock again since the day i left,â rafe rasped. âespecially feeling you cum all over my cock,â he groaned as he felt your walls flutter around him.
âcâmon, princess, cream all over my cock and make a mess like you used to,â he nipped your ear, holding you steady as your legs trembled. your pussy convulses around him, his hand clamping around your mouth to further muffle your cry of pleasure as you cum all over his thick cock.
your orgasm triggers rafeâs, his hips slowly pumping into yours as they become sloppy. he gives you one more harsh thrust, his hips stilling, pushing his cock deep inside you, and letting out a moan as thick ropes of cum spill into you, painting your walls white.
rafe removes your panties from your mouth, your chest heaving, small pants filling the room. your breath hitches in your throat when his hips slowly rolled into yours, âhowâs that for an apology? or you still need some convincing?â.
taglist: @oceandriveab @babygorewhore @cameronsprincess @starkeysbabygirl @bloodibambiidoll @fallbhind @sematarygirls @nemesyaaa @ilovefiction4lmen @zyafics @sturnioloshacker @heartsforvin @cxrrodedcoffin @rafeyscurtainbangs @rafesthroatbaby @jjslaybank @kisses4angels @littlelamy @rafesangelita @starkeygirlposts @drewsarms @hallecarey1 @fallrafwe @sturnskiss @blckbrrybasket @wearemadeofstardust0 @honeybunniesoobin @starkeysbebe @sabrina-carpenter-stan-account @starkeysheart @rafeinterlude @starkeyisthelastname @flvredcas @emilysuperswag @proxy-princess @hyperfixationgirl @ijustwanttoreadlols @slumnit @cl4uus @coco-cinnamon @stoned-writer
#đđđđđ ŕźâ§âË.#stepbro!rafe#rafe cameron x reader#rafe cameron blurb#rafe cameron smut#rafe cameron drabble#rafe cameron obx#rafe cameron#rafe cameron outer banks#rafe cameron x you#rafe cameron fanfiction#rafe smut#rafe x reader#rafe obx#obx smut#rafe cameron imagine#rafe x reader smut#rafe fic#rafe outer banks
418 notes
¡
View notes
Text
Sunshine [10] - Storm
AN: My loves, thank you so so much for your wonderful support and lovely comments and HCs! â¤ď¸ Youâre amazing! â¤ď¸
I hope you like this as well, and please donât forget to tell me what you think, thank you! đĽ°
Pairing: Logan Howlett x Female!Reader
Summary: A sudden storm can be overwhelming.
Word Count:Â 3670
CW: Explicit language, blood, injuries, adult themes MDNI
Series Masterlist
Getting too caught up in a relationship hadnât been an issue since youâd had Theo, but before him, there was a reason why all your friends accused you of being a romantic. When you fell in love, you didnât even think about the possibility of a break up butâ
You really should have.
âLogan?â
Logan looked down at you, running his fingertips over your spine while you played with the dog tags around his neck.
âYeah?â
âI have a question but you need to promise me youâll be honest.â
A rumble of a chuckle vibrated in his chest, making you bite back a smile as you looked up at him, resting your chin on his chest.
âThe last time you made me promise that, you ended up asking me what animal I thought I could beat in a fight.â
âThat was for science.â
âHow?â
âIn case one day we decide to go on a safari and end up getting stranded in there.â
âThatâs a possibility?â
âYou canât be too careful,â you said. âIâm used to thinking about every scenarioâanyway, this is another question.â
âIâm listening.â
âSo you have the super strength and all thatâŚâ
âYeah.â
âWhat supernatural creature do you think you could take down in a fight?â
Logan blinked a couple of times. âThatâs the question you want me to answer honestly?â
âCould you take down a werewolf?â
âWeâre actually talking about this,â Logan muttered to himself. âOkay.â
âA werewolf,â you insisted. âCould you take down a werewolf?â
 He took a deep breath, then shrugged his shoulders.
âI donât think itâd be that difficult to take down a werewolf,â he stated and you hummed.
âA little cocky, but Iâll let it slide,â you said, laying your head on his chest again. âA vampire.â
âPlease, vampires are lame,â he said with a grimace. âI could definitely take down a vampire, are you kidding?â
âYou sound so sure of yourself that Iâm half-tempted to ask if youâve ever taken down a vampire.â
He let out a chuckle. âIâm not going to be beaten by a creature that canât survive in the sunlight even if itâs hypothetical.â
âThey are pretty powerful.â
âTo repeat, they burn in sunlight. Doesnât sound powerful to me.â
You clicked your tongue.
âHow about a zombie?â you asked. âCould you take down a zombie?â
âThose things fall apart anyway, shouldnât be difficult.â
âWhat if itâs a herd?â
âSame logic.â
âYouâre telling me you could take down one hundred zombies?â
âThatâs exactly what Iâm saying.â
You hid your yawn behind your hand. âUm, mermaids.â
âMermaids arenât even scary.â
âNo, not that type ofâlike those in Pirates of the Caribbean, have you watched that?â
âNo.â
âIâll put that on the list. Itâs likeâitâs like sirens, they lure you to the sea and then drown you.â
He paused for a moment, then hummed.
âYeah, I think a mermaid could take me down.â Â
âReally?â
âIâm not good with water.â
âCan you swim?â
âI can swim but if I try to stay still in the water I sink,â he said slowly. âBecause of the skeleton. And like I said, Iâm not good with water.â
Something in his voice sounded distant so you decided not to push him. You were way too sleepy for a big conversation anyway, and you didnât want to force him to talk about anything he didnât want to talk about. Heaving a sigh, you nuzzled closer to him and he dipped his head to press a kiss on top of your head.
âHow about you?â he asked. âWhat supernatural creature could you take down in a fight?â
âDo you know any creatures you can disarm with the power of speech?â you asked, making him let out a laugh.
âNot really.â
âI mean I think Iâd have a better chance surviving a vampire than a werewolf,â you murmured, your voice already drowsy. âWerewolves have fewer weaknesses I think, and yes vampires can hunt you down but only in night time. Well, werewolves can only hunt you down during the full moon, thereâs that but I feel like as far as supernatural creatures goâŚâ
You didnât even realize you were falling asleep.
Until a soaring pain pulled you out of it.
A scream left your lips as your eyes snapped open, your hand shooting to your other arm to grab at it. You sat up straighter in the bed, now realizing Logan was also awake and upright in bed, breathing hard and unsheathing his claws. Your name spilled from his lips in a whisper as you looked down at your arm, the blood pouring from the open wound, coating your hand and the sheets in red.
âIâm fineââ you managed to say breathlessly while Logan stared at you, complete terror in his eyes. âIâm fine itâs justâŚumââ
âLet me see,â he said in a low voice and you tried to blink back the tears with a grimace. Logan carefully lifted your arm, letting you see the three gashes through all the blood under the dim light of the moon coming from the window.
Shit.
âYou need stitches,â Logan muttered as he grabbed his jeans to put them on. âWeâre going to the hospital.â
âStitches?â you repeated, looking down at your arm. âAre you sure?â
âThose are deep cuts,â his voice sounded a little distant again and you couldnât tell it was because of the blood loss you were currently suffering from. He bunched up his white shirt to press it against the wound, making you hiss in a breath.
âIâm sorry,â he said as he swallowed thickly. âIâm so sorry.â
âWhatâno, itâs fine!â you said in a haste, trying to focus through the fire burning your arm. âItâs not your fault.â
âIt is.â
âLoganââ you started but he went to grab your sweater off the chair at the corner of the room, then made his way back to you. He helped you get into it, then into your jeans while you held onto his shoulder trying to move your arm as little as possible.
âI can carry youââ
âLogan, itâs just my arm,â you assured him with a huff of a laughter. âI can walk. Itâs totally fine.â
A shadow crossed his eyes, his jaw clenching tight.
âRight,â he muttered through his teeth. âYeah. Letâs go.â
                                              *
You really, really hated hospitals. As a child, you were quite the troublemaker so youâd had your fair share of hospital visits, and each and every time was quite painful. Even now, as a grown up, you couldnât help but feel tense whenever you had to go to hospitals.
And Theoâs very scary birth hadnât helped the situation.
But if anything, this really wasnât a big deal. A couple of stitches and you would be fine, but Logan looked much more tense than you were. He was completely quiet and withdrawn, standing in the corner of the hospital room like a guard dog while the doctor worked on your arm.
âSo how did you get this, exactly?â she asked and you tried to smile at her.
âOh, uhâŚI work in a diner,â you said. âAnd as it turns out, night shift and sharp objects arenât a good combo.â
âIâd bet,â she said as she pulled back to look at the stitches, then took off her latex gloves. âWell the good news is, itâs a very clean cut so itâll be much easier to heal. Keep it dry the first day, and after tomorrow you can wash around it with clean water twice a day.â
âOkay.â
âTake the antibiotics, apply the cream I prescribed andâŚwell, be careful around knives?â she said with an assuring smile and you let out a small laugh.
âNoted. Thank you so much, doctor.â
âHave a nice night,â she said and walked past the cubicle curtain. You let out a breath, feeling around the gauze before lifting your head to smile at Logan.
âHey,â you said. âYou okay?â
For some reason, Logan couldnât hold your gaze like he usually would, so instead he stole a look at you before fixing his gaze on the floor and nodded.
âSure.â
âYou donât like hospitals either huh?â you asked, âI mean if I hate the smell, I canât imagine how you feel with those enhanced senses of yours.â
Logan didnât answer, instead he rushed to help you when you grabbed your coat so that you could put it on.
âThanks,â you said and he pulled his hands back as if he could burn you if he kept them on you a second longer than he needed to. You pulled your brows together, but didnât comment on it as you started walking beside him to get out of the building.
You didnât really do well with quiet so the music coming from the radio and your nonsense chatter were the only things filling the silence in the car. Logan met your questions with occasional grunts to signal that he was listening and at best you got curt, one-word answers.
It was only when you walked into your apartment and Logan followed you like a quiet guardian that you turned to him, putting your hand on your hip.
âLogan.â
He closed the door behind him. âHm?â
âDonât get me wrong, I can talk until the sunrise but this is becoming a one-way street,â you told him. âAre you okay?â
He blinked a couple of times as if he couldnât believe you were asking him that.
âAre you?â he asked back after a beat and you shrugged your shoulder.
âItâs not the first time Iâm getting stitches,â you said. âAnd to be completely honest with you, after childbirth everything else they do to you in a hospital kind of pales in comparison. Iâm fine.â
He snorted, then clicked her tongue. âSure.â
âNo seriously, itâs just stitches,â you said, walking to the kitchen to fill yourself a glass of water. âAnd you heard what the doctor said, itâll heal pretty easily.â
You popped the painkillers in your mouth, then downed them with water before putting the glass back on the counter, then walked back to the hallway.
âIf I go to sleep right now, I think I can survive on three cups of coffee instead of four tomorrow,â you joked with a grin, but he couldnât even smile back, he just followed you to the bedroom. After helping you get into a comfortable oversized shirt, he took a step back as you sat down on the bed. You frowned, tilting your head.
âAre you coming?â you asked, motioning at the bed and Logan shook his head.
âNo,â he said, his voice deep. Your frown deepened.
âWhat?â
âI should uhââ he motioned at the living room. âIâll sleep on the couch. Iâd still hear if you needed anything at night and itâd be safer.â
âSafer?â you repeated. âLogan, come on.â
âI canât risk another nightmare and you ending up withâŚâ he nodded at your arm and you scoffed a laugh.
âThat wonât happen.â
âYou donât know that.â
Alright, this was strange.
Logan was never this curt with you. He wasnât the most open person in the world, yes, but whenever he spoke to you, his voice would always be warm, melting your insides. Now he sounded way too distant, way too controlled.
You might as well have been speaking to a robot.
âWhy are you punishing yourself right now?â you asked, looking him in the eye and something in his gaze shifted before his jaw clenched again, then he shook his head.
âCall my name if you need anything,â he said, walking out of the bedroom and you blinked a couple of times in confusion. A sigh left your lips and you rubbed at your eyes, then slowly lay down on the bed, grimacing when a sudden spark of pain shot through your arm. You put your pillow under your arm, then grabbed Loganâs pillow to bury your face into it, the pleasant smell of his cologne soothing your senses before sleep creeped up on you, pulling you into its warmth.
                                                *
 When you woke up, you were still groggy and your arm was throbbing. A grimace twisted your face and you took a deep breath, then pulled yourself up to sit up in the bed, and looked down at your arm, feeling around the gauze. It wasnât extremely painful, but it still made sure to let you know it was there so you had a feeling you were going to have to be extra careful carrying plates at the diner, at least for a while. The delicious smell coming from the kitchen made you turn your head and you nibbled on your lip, then slowly pushed the covers off of you and got up from the bed to make your way to the kitchen.
âHi stranger,â you said with a grin and Logan looked over his shoulder, then put the grilled cheese sandwich right next to scrambled eggs on the plate.
âMorning.â
âIf breakfast is your way of apologizing for not sleeping next to me last night,â you said as he poured you coffee, then placed the cup on the small table next to the plate. âItâs the right path.â
A forced smile twitched the corners of his lips upwards before you sat down, then grabbed the sandwich to take a huge bite.
âArenât you eating?â you asked and he shrugged his shoulders.
âNot really hungry.â
You blinked a couple of times; that was new.
âLogan,â you said, clearing your throat before putting the sandwich down. âI think we should talk about what happened.â
âI agree, but after breakfast.â
You pulled your brows together in confusion, then shrugged with one shoulder before grabbing your coffee cup to take a big sip. Loganâs gaze didnât leave you as if he was trying to take in the sight of you as much as he could, as if he was trying to burn this- you, this moment- into his mind. The look in his eyes wasnât distant anymore but worse; it was just haunted. You could feel your stomach doing an unpleasant flip before you tried to shake off the chill running down your spine, then chewed your bite and cleared your throat.
âWhat time did you wake up?â
Logan shook his head slightly.
âDidnât sleep.â
âAt all?â you asked, gawking at him and he shrugged his shoulder almost nonchalantly.
âItâs fine.â
âWell itâs actuallyââ you started but were cut off when your phone started ringing in the bedroom.
âOne moment,â you said and rushed to the bedroom to grab it off the nightstand, then answered it.
âHello?â
âHey love,â Staceyâs voice reached you. âDid I wake you up?â
âNo no, I was already up,â you said and sat down on the bed. âWhatâs up?â
âOkay so, the boss is going to kill me, butâŚâ
âDonât say it.â
âIâll be late again.â
You let out a small laugh. âStace.â
âOkay I know what youâre gonna say but this time itâs totally not my fault.â
âNo?â
âWell, my body decided to have a hangover after last night, so technically itâs not my fault.â
You hummed. âHow much did you drink?â
âWell it was my friendâs birthday and Paul and his friends were at this bar and we decided to go have fun, and then my friend hooked up with Paul so I had to drink a lot to stop myself from visualizing what was going on in the bathroom.â
âI can imagine,â you said. âItâs fine. Iâll cover for you, no worries.â
âUgh, youâre an angel and I love you.â
âLove you too Stace,â you said with a laugh, then hung up the phone and shook your head before making your way back to the kitchen.
âSorry about that,â you told Logan and sat down. âItâs Stacey, youâve met her.â
âYouâre going to work today?â Logan asked. âAre you sure thatâs a good idea?â
âOh yeah, itâs totally fine,â you said. âI barely feel it to be honest, and Iâll be careful.â
âButâŚâ
âBesides, I need to cover for Stace,â you said. âApparently her friend hooked up with Paulâyou remember our line cook Paul? Heâs kind of a womanizer, Iâm kind of surprised she and Paul never had a thingâthey sure do flirt a lot but anyway, Staceyâs friend and he hooked up last night and knowing Stacey, she probably drank everyone under the table, and now she has a hangover. Shocking, isnât it?â
Logan nodded slowly without pulling his gaze off of you.
âDid I tell you about how when Stacey and I first met, I ended up getting black out drunk?â you asked, biting into the grilled cheese sandwich. âIt was my first day at the diner, and she convinced me to have a night out with her, and I swear to you, that girl is a goddamn sponge when it comes to alcohol. I was out a couple cocktails in, and she still had numerous shots and cocktails after. Julie was taking care of Theo that night, so I ended up sneaking into my own apartment so that he wouldnât wake up, and rambled to Julie for like two hours straight about kittens, and then fell asleep watching cat videos.â
A small, sad smile curled Loganâs lips and you smiled back at him, then took another sip of your coffee and put your empty plate into the sink.
âCompliments to the chef,â you said with a grin despite the strange tension almost palpable in the kitchen. âIf you ever get tired of going on missions and stuff, you could go into culinary world I feel like.â
He scoffed a laugh and you took a deep breath, then cleared your throat.
âSo,â you said. âCan we talk?â
Logan swallowed thickly and nodded his head, his jaw clenching.
âYeah.â
âI donât blame you for what happened, at all,â you said. âIt was an accident. YouâŚyou had a nightmare right?â
Logan paused for a moment, then shook his head. âThatâs not an excuse.â
âLogan, thatâs an accident,â you insisted. âYou really shouldnât blame yourself. I donât.â
âYou should.â
âWell then sucks to be you because Iâm not gonna,â you said. âAnd unless you want to get separate beds like those weird couples in the 1950s, I donât see how youâre planning onââ
âI think we should break up.â
That managed to shut you up mid-rant. Your eyes snapped up to his and for a couple of seconds, you could only gawk at him in complete silence, your throat getting tighter.
ââŚWhat?â you managed to rasp out, your voice lost somewhere in your throat and Logan crossed his arms, leaning his back to the wall.
âItâs going to be safer for youââ
âWhat are you even talking about?â
âDo you realize what couldâve happened?â he asked back, his voice tense. âWe got lucky, if you can even call last night that.â
âLogan, itâs a goddamn scratch!â
âYeah, this time!â he insisted. âThis time it was only a scratch on your arm, what about the next time? What if it wasnât your arm?â Â Â
âYou cannot be serious,â you said, blinking back the tears as you shook your head. âYou canât.â
âIâm not going to have your blood on my hands,â he said, his eyes locked in yours. âI canât hurt you. NotâŚnot you. I was so wrapped up in this that I forgot how dangerous I could be for youââ
You let out a breath, running a hand over your face. âDonât give me that speech again.â
âIâm not talking about some silly heartbreak,â Logan told you through his teeth. âIâm talking about life and death. You might see it as nothing, but we both know that itâs not nothing.â
You took a deep breath, forcing yourself to remain calm and sniffled, blinking back the tears again.
âI told you, Iâm going to be the one who decides whether this relationship is dangerous or not.â
A dry laugh climbed up his throat.
âDo you have any idea what it would do to me if IâŚâ he couldnât even finish the sentence as if the mere thought was way too painful. âI canât put you in danger.â
âYouâre not putting me in danger,â you insisted. âYou can hear my heartbeat, canât you? You can smell it when Iâm scared, when Iâmâwhen Iâm nervous. So tell me; last night, was there even a second that I was scared of you? Or this morning? Have I ever been nervous around you because I thought I was in danger?â
That made him pause for a moment before he shook his head. âNo.â
âThere you go. Thereâs your answer to your moral predicament.â
âThat makes it even worse,â he rasped out and you frowned.
âHow?â
âBecause now it falls on me to do it,â he said. âAnd I canât even fucking convince myself that you want it.â
You sniffled, shaking your head.
âDonât do this,â your voice was a low whisper. âPlease donât do this.â
He stared at you, the look in his eyes so painful that for a moment it made you think you were somehow tormenting him with mere words before he clenched his teeth and stepped closer to you so that he could carefully wrap his arm around your waist. He moved slow as if he was terrified that he could somehow hurt you just by touching you and he dipped his head to press a kiss on top of your head as you sniffled, making his grip around your waist tighter for only a moment. You could feel him nuzzle into your hair and stay there completely frozen for a couple of seconds, as if he couldnât bring himself to pull back.
âIâm sorry,â he managed to say after a beat and pulled back, then walked out of the kitchen. You heard the front door open before it closed, and as if on cue you fell on your knees, burying your face in your hands.
Then the sobs started.
#logan howlett#logan howlett x reader#deadpool#deadpool and wolverine#deadpool 3#wolverine#wolverine x reader#logan wolverine#logan x reader#logan howlett x you#wolverine x you#james howlett#logan howlett imagine#logan x you#james logan howlett#logan xmen#wolverine logan
450 notes
¡
View notes
Text
I finally watched this movie, it hit me so hard.
Iâd been listening to the soundtrack for a while, as a bad habit, I tend to listen to movie soundtracks before watching the source materialâand Iâm really into Yeuleâs musicâso I discovered the movie thru the release of their featured song in the movie.
I finally gave it a chance and, wow.
Huge tangent under the cut <3
Iâm nonbinary. Iâm afab. This movie resonated with me so much.
Making this discovery was a hard one, it was like Iâd opened Pandoraâs Box.
One of my other (dearest) friends had come out as nb when we were younger and it scared me, it was something I was aware of but pushed away in fear of discovery. Same with my lesbian identity. But the TV kept glowing, I wouldnât lose them over my own cowardice. Eventually I realized I was lesbian, Iâd realized I was trans.
Sometimes I feel connected to womanhood, to my femininity.
For the sake of others, I sacrifice my otherness for their comfort. I go by all pronouns because Iâm afraid of dropping âsheâ from everyone elseâs mind. I go by they/she in public spaces where I feel safe enough to do so, but at home, Iâm still just a woman, Iâm still âherâ. Only that.
And itâs difficult reconciling this when I do dress femininely, when I let my friends call me woman. Even when I do that to myself, because I am, paradoxically, as I am not. I donât know, gender is hard. I present as a woman to a lot of people, so I have experiences socialized as such.
Not to tote any weird superiority complexes, but I like the way God is described in the bible. âI am that I am.â The image of everyone, man, woman, otherwise, all simultaneously.
I feel maybe itâs like that for me, with womanhood. I am woman, I am something else. I like masculine terms for myself sometimes. Sometimes it feels like an empty space. Like [Owen] described it on the bleachers to [Maddy]. I severely hate overly gendered conversation. As a transmasc person, I do like dude and bro but yk even that gets tiresome.
âYes, Girl.â
âQueen.â
âMiss.â
Only my closest friends call me by âthey/themâ pronouns, even then, I let it slip when they donât get it right. But they know me for who I am beyond the screen, and I do just go by any pronouns. But weâre also just used to pushing that away in the eyes of others who donât see the screen glowing.
In I Saw The TV Glow, Owen and Isabel are parallels to each other (because they are one and the same), theyâre both too cowardly for confrontation, Isabel realizes sheâs dying [as Owen] and apologizes for the sake of othersâ comfort, at the end of the movie, at the outburst her realization causes.
The ending is left up to interpretation, whether she buries herself in the ground with Tara, or she continues to die, living a life as someone fake.
I like to remain hopeful, optimistic. Though, âthere is still time,â might read as a warningâyou still have time, but it will run out eventuallyâI see it as a message of hope for those of us who canât explore our gender identities as freely as others. An eventuality.
During the wire breakage scene, where [Owen] finds herself stopped in the roadâwhere she finds the burning papers of the episode guides, she reads âS06:e01â I like to think that that is where the movie ends and her true life begins. She does break out of the midnight realm.
She doesnât continue to cower away, though she is wont to do. She opened her chest up and saw her missing heart, saw the âPink Opaque,â and ran back to Tara, leaving this world behind, and saving face with her apologies.
..
This movie also filled me with existential dread.
When [Owen] watched the finaleâs tape, when she launched her head into the tv and mourned the fact that her father wasnât really her fatherâa foreboding, looming figure representing prominent patriarchal idealsâwhen she told us about how it was âtime to become a real man,â when her father died, further burying herself into this life that wasnât hers with a family that wasnât eitherâit was terrifying.
We never see that family she had onscreen, and the mention of them makes [Owen] look so defeated. She watches the âPink Opaqueâ again and it isnât as she remembers. Just as Mr. Melancholy said would happen.
âSoon you wonât even remember that youâre dying.â
Whole movie was such a harrowing, representative experience. I sobbed. I mourned. It was like mourning for a past me, for the parts of myself that must stay hidden, for covering the screen.
And the fact that Tara was relatively butch in her real life, but was an awkward girl experimenting with her feminine expression up until she realized she had to escape in the Midnight Realm. I felt connection to her expression as much as I did Isabelâs egg crack.
They were so lesbians for each other, too, be it in a qppďżź sense or in another way.
âŚ
Here I am listening to the OST again, replaying Yeuleâs cover of âAnthems for a 17-year-old Girl,â on my 20th birthday (oh yeah thatâs today) and just.. feeling such a frenzy of emotions.
Ultimately, justâ
There will still be time. Youâll bury the you that isnât authentic in the ground and rise as your truest form eventually. There will always be eventually. There will always be you..
I will be there waiting for me.
But I know that's not true. That's just fantasy. Kid's stuff.
I SAW THE TV GLOW (2024) dir. Jane Schoenbrun
13K notes
¡
View notes
Note
Hi Jade! Can I request Spencer and Nurse!reader? Maybe they meet when heâs wounded/sheâs patching him up?
(Yes Iâm a nursing student I promise we arenât all mean girls đ)
ty for requesting!! ik ur not all mean of course!!<3 âyou meet the cutest FBI agent ever and tend his wounds. fem, 1.5k
One of the small pleasures of your job is when the patients are cute. Not many people come through as handsome as this one. Youâre professional nonetheless.Â
âWhat am I seeing you for today?â you ask, holding your hands behind your back.Â
Your patient, charted as a Dr. Spencer Walter Reid, twenty nine years old, gives you a tentative smile. âSomeone hit me really hard.âÂ
You can see the bruise forming against his temple. âYes, Iâd say so. Did you know the assailant?âÂ
âNo, but itâs handled.â His smile turns to a grimace. âUh, I get these, like, debilitating migraines, and I feel like I have one coming on.â
âA head injury could trigger that,â you agree, holding your hands out in front of you, little torch in hand. âCan I have a look?â you ask softly.Â
When youâve been a nurse for some time, you start to categorise people into boxes. All kinds of boxes for different things, but Spencer Reid gets a tick for a few things straight away: shy, pretty, and sensitive to touch. He must not get touched much, or heâs had a bad experience with strangers. He did just get hit in the head, you allow, brushing a sweet, mousy curl away from his head and holding it out of the way as you shine a light into each of his eyes. He flinches hard, but his pupils react as expected.Â
Whoever hit him managed to break the skin, upon closer infection of the injury. The skin has turned purple at the edges of his cut. Itâll be a big bruise in just a few hours.Â
âSpencer, please tell me if I hurt you, honey,â you say, voice still soft. If heâs got a migraine coming, he wonât want your usual overloud distinction.Â
âItâs okay. It hurts, but not more or less when you poke it.âÂ
âYou have a laceration, yeah? Itâs about three centimetres long, but deep. I can close it with a butterfly stitch, if youâre okay with that.âÂ
âYeah, please. Um, about the migraineââ
âDo you want a tramadol, honey? I think you deserve one.âÂ
âI canât have narcotics.âÂ
You pull back and straighten the hair youâd displaced. âThatâs okay, it just means you canât have the strongest stuff. Most people try to avoid them anyhow. How about tylenol, would that be alright? Or do you avoid painkillers in general?âÂ
âTylenol is fine as long as it doesnât have the codeine with it.âÂ
You give him a gentle nod. âIâll make sure itâs the right one. You can even see the bottle, if you like. Would you want them before or after the stitch?â He probably knows, but you add, âItâs not a real stitch. But it might feel tender when Iâm poking around.âÂ
âAnything. Whatever you want to do first.âÂ
His eyes squeeze closed. You give him a frown he canât see, and rest your hand on his arm. âIs there someone here with you?â you ask him.
âMy friend is coming, I think. There was a lot going on.âÂ
âThatâs okay. Iâm not sending you home until Iâve fixed you, Dr. Reid.âÂ
He smiles, even with his eyes closed, but doesnât say anything more. You wash your hands and find your bandages. A butterfly bandage, a sterile wipe, and a square piece of gauze to cover it cleanly. His eyes are opening again when you return, ushering him gently down the bed so you can sit on his right side near the injury.Â
âWhat do you do for work?â you ask him.Â
âI work for the FBI.âÂ
âYou do?â You tear open the sterile wipe and again pull the curls from his forehead. âThis might sting. Please tell me if it hurts too much.âÂ
âItâs not the cut that hurts.âÂ
âIâm sorry,â you say sympathetically. Migraines are a tricky business. If heâs already having one, you probably canât do much to get rid of it, but that doesnât mean pain relief wonât help. âIâll do this as quickly as I can.âÂ
Heâs quiet. You wipe around the laceration with careful, concise movements. The cut looks clean enough when youâre done, and itâs so small you wonât irrigate it.Â
âAre you an agent?â you ask.Â
âYeah. Special supervisory with the BAU. The, uh, behavioural analysis unit.âÂ
âOh, I know,â you say, putting the wrapping and the dirtied wipe into your cardboard bowl. âI think Iâve seen it on TV sometimes, you guys can track the serial killers and stuff?âÂ
âMostly that, yeah. Uh, sometimes we find trafficking rings or missing kids. Sometimes we manage hostage situations. It depends on the level of the crisis.âÂ
âSo youâre the big gun.âÂ
âI guess so. Iâm not actually good with a gun.âÂ
âNo one has to be good with a gun to change the world.â You pull the butterfly stitch from the packaging and pick at a finicky end. âI hate guns.âÂ
He sighs. âI do, too.âÂ
âThey make my job hard. Itâs not nice, seeing what they can do to people. Itâs awful, really. Spencer, Iâm so sorry, honey, Iâm just gonna put this on here, it might feel uncomfortable as I pull the sides together.âÂ
âItâs okay.âÂ
You pull the plastic of the butterfly stitch on both sides, cinching his cut together promptly. It looks better now you canât see the inside.Â
âIâm gonna cover this with the dressing now. You donât have to keep it on if you donât want to, itâs a pretty small cut, it was just deep. Iâd recommend you try to keep it dry for two days, really, you should keep it covered, but itâs up to you. And if anything happens, if it gets infected, you can always come see me again.âÂ
Youâre mildly flirting, then. Just because heâs nice and shy. It might be a little cruel of you to proposition a man when heâs roughed up, though.Â
Spencer, luckily, understands that youâre not trying to harass him. âThank you.âÂ
You stand, peeling the plastic from the bandaid and exposing the sticky backing. Slowly, you stroke his hair back from the wound and line the bandaid up. He shivers under your nails.Â
âSo sorry,â you say, laughing under your breath, âitâs my nails, huh?âÂ
âItâs okay.âÂ
âYouâre a great patient, Spencer. Iâd give you a sticker if I could, Iâm not kidding.âÂ
âYouâre a great nurse.âÂ
âThank you.â You smooth the edges of the bandaid down for good measure and step away from him to assess him. âHowâs that migraine?âÂ
âGetting worse.âÂ
âYou have them often, you said? Treated or untreated?âÂ
âPsychosomatic, apparently.âÂ
âOh, honey, Iâm sorry. Has your doctor talked to you about CBT?âÂ
âSome. I donât really⌠want it,â he says awkwardly.Â
âThatâs okay. If itâs psychosomatic as they believe, it might get better with time. Howâs the stress in your life?â
âStressful.âÂ
âIt must be hard, the FBI, everything. Life is hard enough. Stopping serial killers must weigh on your heart.â You smile carefully. âWas there anything else you wanted to bring to my attention? Any other injury, anything that needs urgent care?âÂ
âI was mostly worried I had a concussion.âÂ
âIt doesnât seem like it. Youâre not nauseous, are you?âÂ
âNo, I donât think so.âÂ
He gets this awful, sad look on his face, it really isnât nice to see. People come in by themselves all the time but it never gets easier to handle.Â
âAre you alright?â you ask, taking his arm into your hand.Â
âIâm fine.âÂ
He had the look of someone whoâs always fine. Luckily for him, itâs your job to take care of people, to make sure theyâre more than fine. âOkay. Iâm gonna get you something warm to drink. Do you like donuts?âÂ
âUhââ
âIâm getting a feeling about you. Chocolate frosting, I bet.âÂ
He smiles, startled and pleased at once. âYeah.âÂ
âOkay, Iâm gonna get those for you. A drink, a donut, and some much needed Tylenol. You can lay down if you like.âÂ
He nods but doesnât move.Â
As youâre leaving the room, you cross paths with a handsome man with dark skin and a bright smile. Must be something in the air today, you think.Â
âReid, you okay?â you hear him say.Â
âFine.âÂ
âYouâre pink.âÂ
âWhat?âÂ
âYouâre blushing. Oh, you had the pretty nurse, didnât you?âÂ
âShut up,â Spencer whispers sharply.Â
âYou can ask for her number.âÂ
âNo I canât, sheâs working.âÂ
âBut you want to,â his friend surmises.Â
You bite down a smile, giving your head a shake as you go. You need to get a move on. Spencer needs a hot drink, a donut, Tylenol, and a pen. It should be okay if youâre both feeling up to it, right?
#spencer reid#spencer reid x reader#spencer reid x you#spencer reid x y/n#spencer reid x fem!reader#spencer reid imagine#spencer reid fluff#spencer reid fanfic#spencer reid oneshot#spencer reid scenario#spencer reid drabble#spencer reid fic#spencer reid fanfiction
505 notes
¡
View notes
Text
i love you, in every time ŕżâ§â 1973 - we meet again my dear...
chapter summary: After leaving Team X behind, Logan finds himself back in New York City working as a bodyguard for various people. Until he finds himself acting as a bodyguard for you, a mobster's daughter.
word count: 18.3k+
pairing: Logan Howlett x fem!reader
notes: i'm a sucker for the bodyguard trope (and also just dofp logan in general, that man makes me go feral), so you know i had to do it when given the chance! i had so much fun writing this version of reader, especially because this is the closest to 'modern' times that we've gotten and i didn't have to do a ton of research about this year. the tags might give away a little bit of the plot, but i promise it's gonna be a fun ride ;)
warnings/tags: fluff, angst, 70s!logan, mafia/mob, implied age gap, flirting, smut, thigh riding, unprotected piv, creampie, arranged marriage
series masterlist - chapter 4 â chapter 6
He left Stryker, Victor, and Team X behind, settling in New York City as a bodyguard, hired by various people: politicians, the mafia, anyone.
Logan was now getting his fifth job, protecting a mobsterâs young daughter.
He was used to jobs like this by now, but something about this one felt... different. As he walked through the large estate, the details blurred around him. His focus was on the jobâuntil the moment he saw you.
You were standing by the window, the sunlight filtering through the curtains, casting a soft glow over your face. There was something familiar about the way you held yourself, the way your hair fell over your shoulders. For a second, it felt like the air was sucked out of the room.
Loganâs chest tightened.
It was you.
Same face. Same presence. Same pull that had haunted him for over a century.
But you were different, too. This time, you werenât a schoolteacher, a nurse, or a coal minerâs wife. You were his new job.
You turned, eyes meeting his, and for a brief moment, it felt like you recognized him too. That sense of familiarity flickered across your face before you smiledâpolite, but distant.
âY/N, this is Logan,â the mobsterâyour fatherâintroduced. âHeâll be your new bodyguard.â
Your fatherâs voice faded into the background as Loganâs gaze remained locked on you. You gave a small nod, extending your hand. âNice to meet you, Logan.â
Logan stared at your hand for a beat too long before taking it. That brief contact sent a shock through him, an old memory he couldnât quite shake.
âLikewise,â he muttered, his voice rougher than he intended.
Your father clapped Logan on the back. âI expect youâll keep her safe. Thereâs been some... tension with a rival family.â
Logan only nodded, but his attention stayed on you. You were right in front of him, alive. But you didnât know him. Like always.
After your father left the room, you leaned against the window frame, crossing your arms. âSo, how long have you been doing this?â you asked, your tone casual.
Logan leaned against the wall, watching you closely. âLong enough.â
You raised an eyebrow, a small smirk tugging at the corner of your mouth. âThatâs vague.â
He didnât respond, and for a moment, silence settled between you two. It wasnât uncomfortable, but there was something unsaid hanging in the air.
âWhat about you?â Logan asked, more to fill the space than out of curiosity. âHow do you feel about having a bodyguard?â
You shrugged. âIâve had worse.â
That earned a faint, almost imperceptible smile from Logan, but he quickly covered it with a grunt. âGlad to hear it.â
A pause. Then you looked at him, your eyes narrowing slightly, like you were trying to figure him out. âYou seem... familiar.â
Logan stiffened. âDonât think weâve met before.â
You tilted your head, studying him. âNo, but... I donât know. Something about you.â
Loganâs heart pounded in his chest, but he kept his expression neutral. He couldnât tell you. Not about the past lives, not about how many times he had watched you die.
You shrugged it off, smiling again. âMaybe Iâm just imagining things.â
âMaybe,â Logan muttered, not meeting your eyes this time.
The rest of the day passed in a blur of introductions, schedules, and instructions from your father. Logan followed at a distance, keeping an eye on you, but his mind was elsewhere.
That night, Logan sat on the balcony just outside your room, staring out at the city lights. His thoughts raced, the weight of the engagement ring in his pocket feeling heavier than usual.
You were alive. Again.
But for how long this time?
---
You plopped onto your bed, the wire from your rotary phone stretching with you, âhe is good looking though.â
You could practically hear Jenniferâs grin through the phone, âoh, yeah? Man, all your bodyguards are good looking. Itâs not fair!â
You laughed, twirling the phone cord between your fingers. "Heâs⌠different though. I canât quite put my finger on it. Heâs quiet, but not in the usual 'Iâm-paid-to-watch-you' way."
"Is he mysterious?" Jennifer teased, her voice light. "Maybe heâs got some dark, brooding backstory. Mob families always hire guys like thatââstrong and silent.â"
You snorted. "Maybe. But heâs not like the others." You hesitated, leaning back against the pillows, staring at the ceiling. âThereâs something familiar about him⌠like Iâve met him before.â
Jennifer paused on the other end of the line, then her voice softened. "You think heâs one of your dadâs guys from back in the day?"
You shook your head, even though she couldnât see it. "No, itâs not that. Itâs⌠weird, Jen. Like I know him, but I donât. Itâs been bugging me since I met him."
"Maybe itâs fate," she joked, but her tone had a hint of seriousness. "Youâve been going through bodyguards like theyâre tissues. Maybe this oneâs here to stick around."
You rolled your eyes but smiled. "Fate? Youâve been reading too many romance novels."
"Hey, a girl can dream!" Jennifer laughed. "But seriously, if you feel something, maybe itâs worth looking into. Heâs hot, right?"
You smiled at that, though your thoughts wandered back to Logan. The way his eyes lingered on you, like he was seeing something no one else could. "Yeah," you admitted softly. "Heâs definitely that. Heâs probably as old as my dad or somethinâ. But man, Jen, if you saw him youâd lose your mind.â
You twirled the phone cord around your finger, still smiling to yourself, but your thoughts kept circling back to Logan. Something about the way he looked at youâlike he knew more than he was sayingâstuck with you. It wasnât creepy or overprotective. It was... familiar. Comforting, even.
Jenniferâs voice pulled you from your thoughts. âHey, donât overthink it, okay? Enjoy the view for once. Not everyone gets a hot bodyguard with a mysterious vibe. Maybe heâs the silver lining to your dadâs whole âparanoiaâ problem.â
You laughed quietly. âYeah, maybe.â
You hung up not long after, still feeling the weight of that odd, lingering sense of dĂŠjĂ vu.
---
The next morning, Logan was waiting for you downstairs. Dressed in his usual dark clothes, he stood near the front door with his hands in his pockets, posture relaxed but alert. His eyes flicked toward you the second you entered the room.
There it was againâthat heavy gaze that made it feel like he could see right through you.
âMorninâ,â you said, offering a small smile.
âMorninâ,â Logan replied, his voice gravelly.
Your father wasnât homeâout dealing with âbusinessââwhich gave you a rare moment to yourself. Well, mostly. You slipped on your leather jacket and glanced at Logan, your lips quirking up in a teasing grin. âWhatâs the plan, bodyguard? Gonna follow me around all day?â
Logan grunted, something close to amusement flashing in his eyes. âThatâs the job.â
âYou always this chatty?â
âOnly when I meet interesting people.â His tone was dry, but there was the faintest flicker of a smile beneath it.
You snorted, heading for the door. âCâmon, hope you like running errands.â
Logan followed without complaint, falling into step beside you as you made your way to the car. The streets were quieter than usual, but the tension between rival families was palpableâsomething was brewing, and everyone knew it.
Still, Loganâs presence made you feel... safer. Like nothing bad could happen as long as he was there. It was strange. You barely knew him, but being around him felt easy. Natural. Like youâd known him for a lot longer than a day.
---
When you said you were going to run âerrands,â Logan hadnât expected you to walk straight into an animal shelter. He followed you through the entrance, nodding politely at the woman at the front desk as you greeted her like an old friend.
âMorning, Lorraine!â you said with a bright smile.
Lorraine, a middle-aged woman with kind eyes, smiled back. âThereâs my favorite troublemaker. The pups will be glad to see you.â She cast a curious glance at Logan. âAnd whoâs this?â
âMy latest babysitter,â you said with a smirk, glancing at Logan. âLogan, meet Lorraine. Lorraine, Logan.â
Logan gave a curt nod. âMaâam.â
Lorraine chuckled. âA man of few words. I like him already.â She waved you both toward the back. âGo on, theyâve been waiting for you.â
As soon as you walked past the front desk and entered the back area, the sound of excited barking filled the air. Dogs of all sizes pressed their noses against the bars of their cages, tails wagging furiously at the sight of you.
You crouched down in front of one of the kennels, talking softly to a scruffy little mutt as it whined and pawed at the bars. âHey, buddy. Miss me?â
Logan leaned against the wall, arms crossed, watching the way you scratched behind the dog's ears. There was something easy about the way you moved here, something soft. For a mobsterâs kid, you had a surprisingly gentle touch.
"Didn't expect this to be part of the job," Logan muttered after a moment, his voice low but teasing.
You glanced up, grinning. "What, thought Iâd be shopping for fur coats or shaking people down for cash?"
Logan raised a brow. "Somethinâ like that."
You laughed, standing up and dusting your hands off. âSorry to disappoint. Iâve got a weakness for strays.â You reached into your jacket pocket and pulled out a small bag of treats, tossing some into the kennels. "These guys have it rough enough without me skipping out on them."
Logan watched as the dogs practically fought over the treats, barking happily at your attention. You moved from cage to cage, giving each dog a little affection. It was... unexpected.
Logan watched you toss the last treat into one of the kennels, the scruffy mutt practically vibrating with happiness. He leaned back against the wall, arms crossed, an amused glint in his eyes as you turned and dusted your hands off with a grin.
"Youâre full of surprises," Logan muttered.
You raised an eyebrow, smirking as you folded your arms. âOh, yeah? Disappointed?â
"Not exactly." His lips twitched, like he was fighting a smile.
You took a step closer, tilting your head. "Well, what did you expect?"
Logan shrugged, keeping his expression neutral. "Spoiled. Entitled. Maybe a little dangerous."
You laughed, the sound light and easy, and Loganâs chest tightened in a way that felt too familiar. "Dangerous, huh? Guess Iâve got some layers." You gave him a playful once-over. "What about you? Big, scary bodyguard with a brooding vibe. Got any surprises I should know about?"
Logan snorted. "Not really."
You narrowed your eyes like you didnât quite believe him, but instead of pressing, you motioned toward the door. "Câmon. Iâve got one more stop."
Logan fell into step beside you as you exited the shelter and made your way toward the car. You chatted casually, filling the silence with stories about your favorite dogs at the shelter. But Logan stayed mostly quiet, his mind racing. It wasnât just your voiceâit was you. The way you carried yourself, the way you teased him like it was second nature.
He stole a glance at you as you drove. God, it felt the same as always. Like gravity pulled him toward you whether he wanted it or not.
---
Logan shouldâve expected the second time around that you werenât taking him to a normal place for errands. He was even more surprised when you parked in a nursing home parking lot and got out with that same pep in your step.
The sliding doors opened as you walked up to the front counter, where a middle-aged woman with tired eyes peered over the top of a blocky computer monitor. Her name tag read Carol.
âMorning, Carol,â you chirped with an easy smile, tapping your fingers on the desk.
Carol looked up and brightened at the sight of you. âWell, if it isnât my favorite visitor. Here to cheer up the old-timers again?â
âAlways,â you said, flashing a grin. âAnd I brought backup today.â You gestured behind you to Logan, who gave a brief nod.
Carol gave him a once-over and arched an eyebrow. âWell now, you didnât tell me youâd be bringing a tall drink of water.â
You smirked, glancing over your shoulder at Logan. âYeah, figured Iâd mix things up.â
Logan just grunted in response, but the corner of his mouth twitched slightlyâhalf amusement, half something else. Carol winked at you before waving toward the hallway. âYou know where to find them.â
You led Logan down the hall, your steps light and familiar as if you'd been coming here for years. He followed quietly, his sharp gaze flicking between doorways and hallways, always alert.
âYou spend a lot of time here?â Logan asked as you slowed near a door marked Activity Room.
You shrugged. âYeah. Most of these folks donât get many visitors. Itâs nice to stop by and remind them theyâre not forgotten.â
Logan gave a small grunt of acknowledgment. It was such a simple thingâvolunteering at a nursing homeâbut it hit him hard. It was just like you to find the overlooked parts of the world and give them your attention, like the dogs at the shelter, like the people here. You always had that streak of kindness, no matter which life you were living.
You nudged open the door, stepping into the room. A group of residents sat in mismatched chairs, some knitting, others half-watching a daytime soap on an old television. At the sight of you, faces lit up.
âThere she is!â one of the older women called, setting her knitting aside with a delighted clap of her hands. âI thought you forgot about us!â
âAs if I ever could,â you replied warmly, walking over to give her a light hug.
Logan lingered near the doorway, watching as you moved through the room like you belonged there, chatting with each resident, asking about their week, their familiesâif they remembered them. His heart twisted, both with admiration and an ache that wouldnât quit.
You noticed him standing off to the side and shot him a teasing grin. âDonât be shy, Logan. They wonât bite.â
He raised an eyebrow. âNot worried about them.â
You laughed, turning back to an older man with a deck of cards spread out in front of him. âLogan, meet Mr. Russo. Heâs got a mean poker face.â
Mr. Russo gave Logan a once-over, then grinned, his false teeth gleaming. âYou any good at cards, tough guy?â
Logan shrugged. âI can hold my own.â
You slid into the chair beside Mr. Russo, motioning for Logan to join you. âCare to test your luck?â
Logan hesitated for only a moment before pulling out a chair, the legs scraping against the linoleum. As he sat down, you dealt him a hand, your fingers brushing his in the processâa fleeting touch, but enough to send a jolt of familiarity through both of you.
You caught Loganâs gaze over the cards, a flicker of something unspoken passing between you. There it was againâthat sense that you knew him somehow, though you couldnât quite place it. It nagged at you, but you let it pass, offering him a playful smirk instead.
âCareful,â you warned. âI donât go easy on anyone.â
Logan returned the smirk, something dangerous glinting in his eyes. âNeither do I.â
---
After the game, which you wonâbarely, you said your goodbyes to the residents, promising to visit again soon. Logan followed silently as you made your way back to the car, the soft clinking of your keys the only sound between you.
âNot what you expected for today, huh?â you asked as you slid into the driverâs seat.
Logan leaned against the car door, arms crossed. âNot exactly.â
You smiled, starting the engine. âBet you thought being a mobsterâs kid would be more... glamorous.â
âSomething like that.â He gave you a sidelong glance. âYou like keeping people guessing, donât you?â
You grinned, shifting the car into drive. âItâs one of my many talents.â
The two of you drove in companionable silence, the hum of the city filling the space between you. Logan rested his elbow on the window frame, glancing at you every so often. You were like a puzzle he couldnât quite solveâdifferent from the others, yet still unmistakably you.
âWhy do you do it?â he asked after a while. âThe shelter, the nursing home. You donât have to.â
You shrugged, your expression thoughtful. "Dunno. Just because I was born into this life doesnât mean I like what my dad does. I guess sometimes I feel like Iâm tryinâ to balance the scales."
Logan leaned back against the seat, his sharp gaze on you, but he didnât respond right away. You could tell he was chewing on thatâprobably picking apart your words, trying to figure you out. He always seemed like the kind of man who noticed everything, even if he didnât say much about it.
You flashed him a teasing grin, trying to lighten the mood. "What about you? Any skeletons in the closet? Or are you just a man of mystery with perfect timing?"
Logan snorted softly, his lips twitching in that almost-smile he had. "Iâm no mystery. Just do my job."
"Oh, come on," you pressed, throwing him a playful look. "You gotta give me something. Favorite food? Ever been married? Deep, dark secret?"
He gave you a sidelong glance, amused but guarded. "Steak. No. And not a chance."
You huffed in mock disappointment, drumming your fingers on the steering wheel. "Youâre no fun, Logan."
"Never said I was," he muttered, but there was warmth in his tone, like he didnât mind your teasing at all.
The conversation paused for a moment, the soft hum of the engine filling the space between you. Loganâs eyes lingered on you a little longer than they probably should haveâtaking in the curve of your smile, the way your fingers tapped a rhythm on the wheel.
And damn, if you didnât make it hard to stay detached. You were so... alive. Every glance, every smile, every little laugh. You carried yourself like someone who knew how fleeting things could beâand even though Logan knew you couldnât remember, he remembered every time youâd slipped through his fingers. That thought settled heavy in his chest, like a weight he carried everywhere.
You shot him a grin. "You know, if you keep looking at me like that, Iâm gonna think youâre interested."
Loganâs lips twitched. "What makes you think Iâm not?"
The boldness of his response caught you off guard for a second, but you recovered quickly, leaning a little closer, eyes glinting with mischief. "Careful, tough guy. Youâre supposed to be protecting me, not flirting with me."
"Who says I canât do both?" His voice was low, rough, and it sent a small shiver down your spine.
You tilted your head, pretending to consider it. "I think my dad might disagree."
Loganâs eyes darkened slightly, though his expression didnât change. "Your dadâs not here."
There it wasâthat pull again, the quiet, unspoken gravity between the two of you. It was like standing on the edge of something dangerous and thrilling all at once. You felt it in the way his gaze lingered, in the weight of his words. He wasnât just playing along.
You cleared your throat, breaking the tension with a teasing smile. "Well, if youâre planning on making a move, Logan, you better make it good. Iâve got high standards, yâknow."
Logan let out a low chuckleâquiet, but genuineâand for a moment, you thought you saw something softer in his eyes. Something like... affection.
But just as quickly, it was gone, replaced by that familiar guarded expression.
"Noted," he muttered, shifting his gaze back to the road ahead.
You grinned, satisfied that youâd managed to chip away at his walls, even if only a little.
---
The two of you finished your errands without any trouble, stopping by a grocery store for some essentials and grabbing a late lunch at a small diner tucked away from the main streets. It wasnât muchâjust burgers and friesâbut sitting across from Logan in the booth, you felt surprisingly content.
He was quiet most of the time, but not in a way that felt awkward. It was... comfortable. Like he didnât need to fill the silence just for the sake of it. And every now and then, heâd throw out a dry, sarcastic comment that made you laugh harder than you expected.
You leaned back in the booth, sipping your soda and watching him over the rim of your glass. "Yâknow, Logan... youâre not half as scary as you look."
Logan raised an eyebrow, smirking slightly. "Disappointed?"
"Not at all," you replied, your smile turning a little softer. "I like surprises."
He held your gaze for a moment, something unreadable flickering behind those sharp blue eyes. And for a secondâjust a secondâyou thought maybe, just maybe, there was something familiar about the way he looked at you. Like you were more than just a job to him.
But before you could dwell on it, Logan glanced at his watch and cleared his throat. "We should head back. Your old manâll be expecting you."
You sighed dramatically, sliding out of the booth. "Guess my funâs over."
Logan chuckled, tossing a few bills on the table for the check. "For now."
You gave him a playful nudge as you walked past him toward the door. "Donât sound too excited."
---
By the time you got back to the house, the sun was starting to dip below the horizon, casting the streets in a soft orange glow. Logan followed you inside, his quiet presence grounding you in a way you couldnât quite explain.
"Thanks for today," you said, tossing your jacket onto a chair.
Logan gave a small nod, leaning against the wall near the door. "No problem."
You hesitated for a moment, then shot him one last grin. "You know, youâre not as bad as I thought."
"Same to you," he replied, that almost-smile creeping back onto his face.
And just like that, the unspoken connection between you simmered beneath the surface, waiting.
Maybe Logan was right. Maybe your dad would be pissed if he knew how much you enjoyed your new bodyguardâs company.
But standing there, watching Loganâs gaze linger on you for just a beat too long, you found you didnât care all that much.
"Goodnight, Logan," you said softly, turning toward the stairs.
"Goodnight, Y/N," he replied, his voice low and steady.
And as you climbed the stairs, you couldnât shake the feeling that this wasnât the first time youâd said goodnight to him like this.
Not by a long shot.
---
Your dad told you not to leave the house today, which was fine by you, you had laundry to do anyways.
It had become habit to do your own laundry, even if you did have maids around the house. Nancy, one of the older maids, was the one to teach you that, along with cooking and cleaning since your mother has been gone since you were little.
You had a radio set on the washer, the familiar croon of 70s tunes filling the small laundry room as you pulled warm clothes from the dryer into a basket. Youâd been at it for the better part of the morning, the simple domestic task giving you a sense of normalcy. The soft hum of the machines, the crackling radio, and the scent of clean laundryâ it was all routine.
Routine helped keep your mind off the storm brewing outside your little bubble.
You sighed, swaying your hips a bit to the music as you lifted the basket. The house felt quieter today, with your dad off dealing with âbusinessâ as usual. And Logan? He was somewhere nearby, probably lurking in the shadows like the brooding protector he was.
As if on cue, Logan appeared in the doorway, leaning against the frame with his arms crossed. He was dressed in his usual dark clothing, looking as stoic as ever. You wondered if he ever wore anything other than flannels and a leather jacket.
"You know, I didnât take you for the laundry-doing type," he remarked, his gravelly voice cutting through the music.
You raised an eyebrow, throwing a playful glance over your shoulder. "What, you think Iâm too spoiled to do my own chores?"
Logan's lips twitched, almost forming a smile. "Something like that."
You smirked, grabbing the laundry basket and turning to face him. "I like to surprise people."
"Youâre good at it," he replied, his gaze lingering a little longer than usual. There was something behind those eyes, something deeper, but as always, he kept it hidden beneath that calm, impenetrable exterior.
You tilted your head, leaning your hip against the dryer. "You sticking around or just checking on me?"
Logan shrugged, though his eyes never left yours. "Just making sure you're not running off anywhere. Your dad was pretty clear about staying put."
You rolled your eyes, but the smile tugging at your lips softened the gesture. "Iâll be a good girl. Promise."
Logan grunted in response, pushing off the doorframe and walking closer. "Youâre a lot of things, Y/N. Not sure âgood girlâ is one of them."
You let out a laugh, swatting at him with a towel. "Hey, I can behave when I want to. Itâs just more fun not to."
He caught your wrist with ease, holding it for a second too long before letting go. There was that familiar tension between you again, the unspoken something that crackled in the air whenever the two of you were close. He probably didn't mean to linger, but you could feel itâthat pull.
"Maybe itâs the company," you teased, grabbing your laundry basket. "You bring out the best in me."
Logan didnât respond immediately, but there was something in his eyes, something that made your breath hitch. He was quiet, but not in the usual way bodyguards were. With Logan, there was a weight to his silence, like he was always holding back, always watching.
You pushed past the lingering tension with a grin, heading toward the door with your laundry. "Come on, broody. Letâs get out of the laundry room before we both go stir-crazy."
As you passed by, you brushed against himâjust lightly, but enough to send a small jolt through you. He didnât move, but his eyes followed your every step, that silent intensity never wavering.
You stopped in the hallway and shot him a look over your shoulder. âYouâre making this way too serious, you know. Iâm doing laundry, not sneaking out of prison.â
âOld habits die hard,â he replied, crossing his arms with a slight smirk. âBesides, I think your dadâs idea of âsafeâ is pretty different from yours.â
You rolled your eyes, hugging the laundry basket closer. âRight. Next, heâll say I need an escort to the mailbox.â
Logan raised a brow, clearly amused. âYou wouldnât be the first.â
That earned him a laugh, and you shook your head, settling the basket on the table in the hall. âGuess youâre stuck with me then, bodyguard.â
âDoesnât seem so bad,â he said, his voice softening as he glanced at you. His gaze was familiar in a way you couldnât place, like heâd looked at you this way a hundred times before.
âYeah?â You took a step closer, crossing your arms with a playful grin. âAnd here I thought Iâd be driving you crazy.â
âYou do,â he murmured, almost too quietly. His lips turned up slightly, but he looked away, that unspoken wall going back up.
âGood,â you teased, reaching out to poke him in the chest. âKeeps things interesting.â
Logan caught your hand before you could pull it back, holding it just long enough that you could feel the warmth of his touch, the quiet strength in it. There was something in his eyes that hinted at⌠more. Like heâd known you far longer than you couldâve ever guessed.
âIs that what you want?â he asked, his voice barely above a whisper.
Your heart thumped, but you kept your tone light. âDepends on what youâre offering, doesnât it?â
His gaze dropped to your hand, still caught in his. He let go, but there was something in his expression that lingered. It was like he was searching for the right words, something he couldnât quite say. Or maybe didnât want to.
Instead, he settled back with that guarded look. âBetter get used to me being around,â he said, nodding toward the front of the house. âYour dad wonât have it any other way.â
You glanced down the hall and shrugged. âGuess I can live with that. For now.â
Loganâs lips twitched, just barely. âFor now,â he echoed, and there was something heavier in those words, something he wasnât sharing.
You lingered for a moment, the silence stretching between you, before you picked up the basket again. âWell, Iâve got more laundry to fold. But if you feel like helping outâŚâ
He chuckled, shaking his head. âNice try, sweetheart.â
You rolled your eyes, shooting him a wink. âFine. Iâll let you off easy this time.â
âAppreciate it,â he said with a smirk, but his eyes softened as he watched you turn to go, like he was holding back something he couldnât quite name.
As you walked away, the light-heartedness of the moment stayed with you, but so did something else. It was that look Logan had, the one that made you feel seen, like he knew you better than anyone else ever had.
Maybe he did.
Or maybe, in some impossible way, he always had.
---
âNo, no, no, cara. Give it to me.â Nancy took the mixing bowl away from you, stirring the batter while muttering something in Italian.
You leaned your hip against the counter, placing your head on Nancyâs shoulder with a pout. "I was doing what youâre doing.â
Nancy shook her head, stirring the batter with a practiced hand, her warm, familiar presence comforting. âNo, cara mia, you were doing what you think Iâm doing.â She shot you a look, one of those fond, chiding glances sheâd perfected over the years. âAnd it was not the same.â
You laughed, pressing a kiss to her cheek. âFine, but youâre teaching me bad habits. This is how I stay spoiled, you know.â
She chuckled, patting your cheek affectionately. âYou think you need me to be spoiled? You do just fine on your own.â
Before you could respond, Loganâs familiar silhouette appeared in the doorway. He leaned against the frame, watching you with a slight smirk that was becoming all too familiarâand endearing.
âCareful, Nancy,â he said, his voice a low rumble. âSheâs already hard enough to handle.â
You turned, hands on your hips, feigning offense. âExcuse me, hard to handle?â
Logan shrugged, crossing his arms with a smirk. âYou said it, not me.â
Nancy chuckled, eyes sparkling as she looked between you and Logan. âAh, Y/N, heâs right. You do have a little spirit.â
You scoffed playfully, giving Logan an exaggerated glare before grinning back at Nancy. âWhat? Iâm an angel, and you know it.â
Logan snorted, clearly enjoying himself. âRight. A real saint.â He gave you a knowing look, one that made your stomach flip despite yourself. That unspoken energy simmered between you two, even as you tried to keep it casual.
Nancy just shook her head, muttering something in Italian as she set the bowl down. âAngels donât cause so much trouble,â she teased, pinching your cheek. âI taught you better.â
You rubbed your cheek with a grin, leaning back against the counter. âIâm blaming Logan. His bad influence must be rubbing off on me.â
Logan raised an eyebrow, the corner of his mouth twitching up. âThat right? Thought you didnât need any help there.â
âOh, I donât,â you said, crossing your arms with a challenging look. âIâm fully capable of trouble on my own.â
Nancy watched the two of you with a satisfied smile, turning back to her baking. âAh, I see,â she murmured, her voice light. âItâs good to have someone who knows how to keep you in check.â
The glint in her eye wasnât lost on you, and you rolled your eyes. âYouâre making it sound like Iâm some kind of wild child.â
âNo, no,â she replied with a grin, waving her hand. âJust that I think he knows you better than you think, cara.â
Loganâs gaze softened a little at that, and though he didnât say anything, his look lingered, as if he were silently agreeing with her.
You cleared your throat, feeling the familiar warmth creeping up your neck. âWell,â you started, trying to brush off the moment, âif Loganâs going to stick around, he might as well help.â
Nancy gave a sly smile, turning to Logan. âWhat do you say, Logan? A little kitchen work wouldnât hurt.â
Logan shook his head, holding his hands up in surrender. âYou two are doing just fine without me.â
You shot him a grin, taking a step closer. âOh, come on. Big, tough Logan afraid of a little flour?â
His smirk softened as he looked down at you. âYou keep pushing, and I might just teach you a lesson in troublemaking.â
Your stomach fluttered at the way his gaze stayed locked on yours, that familiar pull tugging you closer. âIs that a threat?â
âCall it⌠a warning,â he murmured, his voice barely above a whisper. His hand brushed against yours, just for a second, but it was enough to send a spark up your arm.
Nancy cleared her throat, clearly amused. âOkay, okay. I donât need you two making a mess of my kitchen.â
You stepped back, giving Nancy a sheepish smile, and Logan chuckled, the sound low and easy. âSheâs right,â he said, nodding toward the door. âGuess Iâll just keep an eye on you from a safe distance.â
Nancy gave him a knowing look, shaking her head with a chuckle. âIf only it were that simple.â
---
âAh, stay still, cara.â Nancy chided you, taking out a roller from your hair.
You gave Nancy a pout, eyes skimming your reflection in the mirror with clear discontent. "I donât like it." Your voice held more weight than just the hair and makeup, though, and Nancy seemed to pick up on it.
She clicked her tongue, smoothing out a curl before looking at you through the mirror. âAh, cara mia, tonight is important to your father. Besides,â she added, eyes glinting, âyou look beautiful, yes?â
You gave her a half-hearted smile, brushing your hands over the bright yellow fabric of your dress. The dress was elegant and too formal for your taste, the kind of thing youâd never have chosen if it werenât for your dadâs insistence on making you âpresentableâ for his associates.
Nancy sighed, placing a gentle hand on your shoulder. âY/N, itâs one night. Then youâll be back to your regular clothes, hmm?â
You grinned, rolling your eyes. âCanât come soon enough.â
Just as you were about to add more, there was a quiet knock at the door. You looked up, already expecting Loganâs familiar silhouette. He leaned against the frame, hands in his pockets, his usual air of calm doing little to hide the intense look in his eyes as he took in the sight of you in the dress.
âLooks like theyâve got you all dolled up,â he remarked, a faint smirk playing on his lips.
You shot him a look, half annoyed, half amused. âYeah, laugh it up, tough guy. Bet youâre glad itâs not you in this thing.â
Logan chuckled, stepping further into the room. âYou could say that.â His eyes met yours, and for a brief second, there was something in his gaze, something you couldnât quite put into words. But just as quickly, he looked away.
Nancy gave you a knowing smile, patting your shoulder before stepping back. âLogan,â she said, with a gentle warning in her voice, âtake care of her tonight, yes?â
Loganâs expression softened, his gaze turning protective as he looked at you. âAlways do.â
Nancy winked, then left the room, leaving you alone with him.
You let out a sigh, reaching for the hem of your dress as if you could somehow make it less constricting. âDo I really have to go down there?â
Logan raised an eyebrow. âYou think your dadâs throwing this party for fun? Whole point is for you to be seen.â
âGreat,â you muttered, moving toward the door. But as you passed him, Logan placed a hand on your shoulder, stopping you.
âYouâll be fine,â he said, his voice lower, more reassuring. âTheyâre not expecting anything from you. Just show up, smile, let them know you exist.â
You looked up at him, searching his face. He was steady, calm, his expression soft in a way he rarely let others see. You didnât know why, but having him there made you feel a little more at ease. âGuess I donât have much choice, do I?â
âNope,â he replied, his mouth twitching into that almost-smile.
With a resigned sigh, you squared your shoulders. âAlright, letâs get this over with.â
---
The party was everything youâd dreaded: formal, suffocating, and filled with people whose only interest in you was as your fatherâs daughter. Youâd stuck close to Logan most of the night, exchanging quiet remarks whenever the chance arose, his presence the only thing keeping you from losing your mind. But as the night wore on, a few glasses of champagne and the tension of the evening started to wear on you.
You tugged on Loganâs sleeve as you leaned in close. âThink anyone would notice if I snuck out?â you murmured, your breath warm against his ear.
Logan chuckled low, his gaze flickering over you. âConsidering your dadâs been watching you like a hawk? Probably.â
You rolled your eyes, letting your hand brush his arm. âFigures. He canât just let me have one night off.â You shifted closer, feeling his warmth through his jacket, and gave him a mischievous smile. âBet you didnât sign up for babysitting duty.â
âDidnât realize youâd need it,â he replied with a smirk, his voice barely loud enough for you to hear.
You nudged him playfully, letting your hand linger on his arm. âI donât,â you said, a little more insistently. âYou just donât know what to do with me.â
His eyes met yours, and there was something dark and unspoken in his gaze. âCareful,â he murmured, his voice dropping. âI might take you up on that.â
The hint of challenge in his tone sent a thrill through you, and you leaned closer, your hand settling on his chest as you whispered, âOh, Iâm counting on it.â
You could feel his heartbeat, steady beneath your hand, but his expression gave nothing away. He looked down at you, his jaw tight, but his eyes held that familiar intensity, the kind that had always made you wonder just how long heâd been watching you. It was intoxicating, that pull between you, and tonight, with the champagne loosening your guard, you felt bolder than usual.
When you finally pulled away, you could feel his gaze following you, but you didnât let yourself look back. Instead, you mingled through the crowd, smiling politely, pretending to listen to conversations while stealing glances at Logan across the room.
After what felt like hours, your fatherâs attention finally shifted, and you took the chance to slip away to your bedroom.
As you walked up the stairs, Logan trailed behind you, like always. You were tired of this, of the flirting, how he did it back to you, but how nothing ever happened.
Well tonight you were done with that.
You opened your bedroom door and sat on the bed, quickly slipping off your heels and tossing them carelessly across the room. The muffled sounds of laughter and clinking glasses filtered up from downstairs, where the party raged on. Logan stood in the doorway, as he always did, watching you in that silent, intense way that had been driving you crazy for months.
You looked up at him, your fingers playing with the hem of your short yellow dress, the fabric brushing against your thighs as you shifted on the bed. âYou cominâ in, or are you just gonna stand there all night?â
Logan didnât respond right away, his jaw ticking as his eyes flicked over you, taking in the sight of you sitting there, legs crossed, your dress riding up just enough to tease. He sighed, stepping into the room but staying near the door. âYour old manâs got half the city downstairs, Y/N. This ainât the time.â
You raised an eyebrow, a small smirk tugging at your lips. âSince when do you care about my dad? Heâs not your boss.â
He crossed his arms over his chest, the leather of his jacket creaking. âHe pays me to keep you safe, not⌠this.â
You stood up from the bed, taking a step toward him. âThis?â you repeated, voice playful, but you could feel the tension in the air thickening. âAnd what is âthis,â Logan?â
He didnât answer, just stood there, his eyes dark and unreadable, but you could see the way his body tensed when you got closer, the way his gaze flicked down to your legs before snapping back up to your face.
You reached out, your fingers brushing against the rough material of his flannel, and you could feel the heat of his body through the layers of fabric. He stiffened, his hand catching your wrist, but it wasnât harsh. Just enough to stop you.
âY/N, donât,â he warned, his voice low, rough.
You tilted your head, stepping even closer until your body was almost pressed against his. âWhy not?â you asked softly. âYouâve been following me around for months. Always there, always watching. What are you so afraid of?â
âIâm not afraid,â he muttered, but his grip on your wrist tightened just a little, like he was holding himself back. âYouâre too young for this. I work for your dad.â
You pulled your wrist free, undeterred, your hand now resting against his chest. âIâm not a kid, Logan. And you donât work for himâyou work for me. Youâve been protecting me, havenât you?â
His eyes narrowed. âThatâs not what I mean, and you know it.â
âThen what do you mean?â you shot back, moving even closer, your fingers trailing up to his shoulder, over the leather of his jacket. âYouâve been pulling away from me every time I get close, but you keep coming back.â
Loganâs jaw clenched, his hands hovering near your waist, as if he was afraid to touch you. âYouâre drunk.â
âIâm not drunk,â you said firmly, your voice steady. âAnd you know that.â You pressed a little harder, your lips just inches from his jaw, close enough to feel the warmth radiating from his skin. âYou donât have to keep pretending like you donât want this.â
His hands shot up to your shoulders, gripping you tightly, but he didnât push you away this time. His breathing was heavier now, the muscles in his arms tensing as if he was fighting against himself. âYou donât know what youâre asking for,â he growled, his voice barely above a whisper.
âMaybe not,â you admitted, your lips brushing the stubble on his jaw as you spoke. âBut I know what I want.â
Logan groaned low in his throat, his fingers tightening on your shoulders, but still, he didnât push you away. His resistance was crumbling, you could feel it.
âYouâre not a kid,â he repeated quietly, almost like he was trying to convince himself.
âNo,â you whispered back, your lips ghosting along the side of his neck, your hands moving to his chest, fingers curling in the fabric of his shirt. âIâm not.â
In a swift movement, you pushed him back toward the chair in the corner of the room, his legs hitting the edge as you guided him down. He sat heavily, his hands falling from your shoulders to your hips, still trying to hold onto that last bit of control.
You straddled his thigh, your dress riding up as you settled against him, the heat of your body pressed against the denim of his jeans. His hands moved up to your waist, holding you in place, but the look in his eyes told you he was barely holding on.
âY/N,â he rasped, but his voice was shaky, uncertain.
You didnât give him time to think. You started moving, rocking your hips against his thigh, slow at first, testing. His grip on your waist tightened, his eyes darkening as he watched you, the tension in his body radiating through his hands.
He wasnât stopping you.
You bit your lip, your breath hitching as you pressed harder against him, the friction sending a jolt of heat through you. Logan groaned, his hands sliding down to your hips, holding you steady as you moved. His control was slipping, and you could feel it.
âFuck,â he muttered under his breath, his head falling back against the chair, his eyes squeezed shut.
You leaned forward, your lips brushing his ear. âStill think Iâm too young?â
Loganâs jaw clenched, his hands gripping you harder as you rocked against him, the rough fabric of his jeans rubbing against the thin material of your underwear. Every movement sent sparks of pleasure through you, and you could tell from the way his breathing quickened that he was feeling it too.
His hands slid up your sides, fingers digging into your skin as he tried to pull you closer, but you were in control now. You pressed your lips to his neck, kissing the exposed skin, feeling the tension in his body as you kissed down toward his collarbone, your fingers tangling in his shirt.
Logan groaned, his hands gripping you tighter as you moved faster, grinding against his thigh with more urgency. The heat between your legs was almost unbearable now, the pressure building with every movement, every gasp that escaped your lips.
Logan's eyes were shut tight, head thrown back against the chair, his hands gripping your waist like he was the one trying to stay grounded. But you werenât stopping, not after all the months of back-and-forth, all the moments youâd caught him watching you with that dark, unreadable look. The friction, the heat pooling between your legs, was everything youâd been waiting for, and it was clear from the roughness of his breathing that he wasnât far behind.
You pressed harder, your hips rolling against his thigh as you gripped his shoulders to steady yourself. The thin fabric of your dress had ridden up, and you knew he could feel just how soaked you were through the denim of his jeans. His hands were at your waist, digging into your skin in a way that bordered on painful but only made you push down harder, rocking your hips with more insistence.
Loganâs voice was rough when he finally spoke, his hands tightening as if he was trying to keep himself from pulling you in closer. âY/N⌠youâre playinâ with fire here,â he growled, the words thick, like he was barely holding back.
You ignored him, pressing a little harder, your lips hovering just over the edge of his jaw as you breathed, âMaybe I like the heat.â
His jaw clenched, but his hands slid up, settling just under your ribs, holding you steady as you moved. Each shift of your hips brought another groan out of him, the sound vibrating through his chest and sending a thrill straight through you. You could feel yourself getting closer, your breath coming in shallow gasps as the pressure built, the heat between your legs almost too much to bear.
âLogan,â you whispered, your hands slipping up to tangle in his hair, pulling his face closer. You could see the restraint etched across his face, the way his jaw was clenched tight, like he was struggling to keep himself from giving in. âI need you.â
His hands tensed on your waist, fingers digging in harder, his breathing growing rougher with every word that slipped from your lips. But he didnât pull away; if anything, he held you tighter, letting you grind against him, the rough denim of his jeans rubbing against you in a way that left you breathless, desperate.
âYou know what youâre doinâ to me?â he muttered, his voice barely more than a growl as his eyes met yours, dark and full of something youâd been longing to see for months.
âMaybe,â you replied, a small, breathless smile tugging at your lips as you kept moving, kept pressing closer, feeling the tension between you both thicken until it was almost unbearable. âMaybe I want to see how far youâll let me go.â
Logan groaned, his grip tightening as his eyes fell shut again, his hands shifting to guide your hips, helping you keep up the steady rhythm that was driving you both closer to the edge. You leaned forward again, your lips brushing against his neck, pressing soft kisses along the exposed skin as you rocked against him, the heat building with every second.
âY/N,â he rasped, his voice so low it sent a shiver through you. âYouâre⌠youâre so damnââ
You cut him off, pressing your lips to the spot just under his ear, feeling the way his breath hitched as your hips ground down harder. You were close, every nerve ending on fire, and you could feel that he was, too. His hands were everywhere, sliding up your back, pressing you closer, holding you tight like he was afraid to let go.
And then, finally, the pressure broke. You gasped, fingers digging into his shoulders as your hips stilled, your body shuddering against him. Loganâs grip on your waist tightened, his own breath hitching as he held you steady, his hands warm and solid as you rode out the waves of pleasure.
He was quiet for a long moment, his breathing heavy, and you could feel the way his body had tensed beneath you, the strain in his hands as he held himself back. Slowly, you looked up, meeting his gaze, and the intensity in his eyes made your breath catch all over again.
Without a word, Logan shifted, his hands sliding down to hook under your thighs as he stood, lifting you with a strength that sent another thrill through you. Your arms wrapped around his shoulders as he carried you to the bed, the heat in his gaze leaving no room for second thoughts, no hesitation. This was it, and you were ready.
He laid you down, his hands lingering on your thighs, his fingers brushing over your skin as he looked down at you, his expression a mix of hunger and restraint. You reached up, tugging him closer until he was hovering over you, his weight pressing down just enough to make you feel secure, safe.
This was what youâd been waiting for, what youâd both been skirting around for too long. Loganâs hands slid up your sides, his fingers trailing along the fabric of your dress, and you felt your breath hitch as his gaze darkened, a small smirk tugging at the corner of his lips.
His thumbs brushed the exposed skin just above the low neckline of your dress, leaving goosebumps in their wake. You watched him, eyes locked on his as he leaned in, his jaw tight, the hunger in his gaze barely restrained. The room felt smaller, warmer, like the air had thickened between you.
And then, finally, his mouth was on yours.
The kiss was desperate, wild, like he was making up for lost time. His lips claimed yours with a roughness that sent a shiver down your spine, his hands moving to cradle your face, pulling you closer as if he couldnât stand the distance. You gasped against his mouth, your fingers finding their way into his hair, tugging him down harder.
It had been seventy-three years since heâd last kissed youânearly three quarters of a century of holding backâand the intensity of it showed. It was all-consuming, like he was trying to make up for every second heâd denied himself this.
Logan groaned into your mouth, a deep, almost pained sound, and the desperation in it made your blood race. He kissed you like he was starving, like he needed this, needed you, and you felt your body melt into him. His hands slid down your body, rough and sure, stopping at your hips to pull you flush against him. The heat between your legs was almost unbearable, and the friction of his jeans against your thighs only made it worse.
You broke the kiss for air, your breaths coming fast, but Logan didnât stop. His mouth found your neck, trailing hot, open-mouthed kisses down the curve of your throat, teeth scraping against your skin just enough to make you gasp. His hands were everywhere, tracing the curve of your waist, the swell of your hips, gripping you with a possessiveness that sent a thrill through you.
âLogan,â you whispered, your voice breathless, needy. You tilted your head back, giving him better access as his lips continued their descent, leaving a path of fire along your skin. Your hands fisted in his flannel, pulling him closer, and he groaned again, the sound vibrating through your body.
âGod, Y/N,â he rasped, his voice thick with desire, like he was barely holding on. His hands slipped under your dress, fingers brushing against the sensitive skin of your thighs, and you shivered, your breath catching in your throat. He pulled back just enough to look at you, his eyes heavy-lidded, pupils blown wide with need. âYouâre gonna be the death of me,â he muttered, but the words were laced with something softer, something that made your heart skip.
You didnât reply, just pulled him down for another kiss, this one just as desperate as the first. Your hands roamed over his chest, slipping beneath the open flannel to feel the heat of his skin, the hard muscles that tensed under your touch. Logan shivered, his breath catching as your fingers brushed against his bare chest, and you felt a rush of satisfaction at the way he reacted to you.
His jacket slipped from his shoulders, landing somewhere on the floor, but neither of you paid it any mind. Your hands were already pushing the flannel off him, revealing more of his skin, and Logan helped you, shrugging it off with a growl of impatience. The white beater he wore beneath clung to his chest, and you could see the way his muscles flexed beneath it, the way the fabric stretched taut over his shoulders.
He leaned back down, capturing your lips in another searing kiss, and you moaned into his mouth, your nails digging into his shoulders. Loganâs hands were back under your dress, sliding up, leaving trails of heat in their wake. His touch was rough, calloused, but so incredibly gentle in a way that made your heart ache. You arched into him, your body pressing closer, desperate for more, for everything he was willing to give.
âFuck,â he muttered against your mouth, his hands sliding higher until his thumbs brushed the edge of your panties. He paused, breathing heavily, his eyes searching yours, looking for any sign of hesitation. But there was none. You were all in, had been from the moment youâd first seen him.
You reached down, grabbing his wrists and guiding his hands further up, silently urging him on. Loganâs breath hitched, and his eyes darkened even more, a low growl rumbling in his chest. His fingers hooked into the waistband of your panties, and you could feel your heart pounding as he tugged, the thin fabric slipping down your legs.
"Fuck, Y/N," he growled, his voice thick with need as his calloused hands slid back up your thighs, pushing your dress higher. "You're so damn wet already."
You gasped as his fingers brushed against your center, your hips jerking up instinctively. "Logan, please," you whimpered, reaching for him.
He leaned down to kiss you hard, his tongue pushing into your mouth as his fingers began exploring you properly. The roughness of his hands contrasted with how gently he touched you, like he was afraid of breaking you. You moaned into his mouth as he slid one thick finger inside, your hands gripping his shoulders.
"That's it, darlin'," he murmured against your lips. "Let me hear you."
Your dress was bunched around your waist now as Logan worked another finger into you, stretching you carefully. Your earlier orgasm had left you sensitive, making every touch feel electric. His thumb found your clit and began rubbing slow circles that had you writhing beneath him.
"Logan," you gasped, your nails digging into his skin through his beater. "I needâah!âI need more."
He growled low in his throat, curling his fingers inside you. "Tell me what you need, Y/N. Say it."
Your face flushed but you met his eyes. "I need you inside me. Please, Logan. I've wanted this for so long."
Something dark and possessive flashed in his eyes. He withdrew his fingers, making you whimper at the loss, and reached down to undo his belt. The metal clinked as he pulled it free, the sound sending a thrill through you.
You sat up enough to pull your dress over your head, leaving you in just your bra. Logan's eyes raked over you hungrily as he pushed his jeans down his hips. The obvious bulge in his boxers made your mouth go dry.
"Come here," he growled, pulling you into another searing kiss as his hands found the clasp of your bra. It took him only seconds to undo it, and then you were bare before him, your nipples hardening in the cool air.
Logan's mouth moved to your neck, sucking hard enough to leave marks as his hands cupped your breasts. You moaned as he rolled your nipples between his fingers, your back arching into his touch.
"Fuck, you're perfect," he muttered against your skin, his voice rough. He shifted to take one nipple into his mouth, his tongue swirling around the sensitive peak as you gasped and squirmed beneath him.
Your hands found the hem of his beater, tugging insistently until he pulled back long enough to yank it off. The sight of his bare chest, all hard muscle and dark hair, made heat pool between your legs. There were old scars scattered across his skin - remnants of wounds time hadn't quite erased.
You reached for his boxers but he caught your wrists, pinning them above your head with one large hand. "Not yet," he growled, his free hand sliding down between your legs again. "Want to make sure you're ready for me."
His fingers found your clit again and you cried out, oversensitive and desperate. "Logan, please," you begged, trying to buck your hips up against his hand. "I'm ready, I swear. I need you now."
He studied your face for a long moment, his eyes dark with desire, before releasing your wrists. "Take them off," he ordered, nodding to his boxers.
Your hands shook slightly as you pushed the fabric down his hips, freeing his cock. He was huge, thick and hard, already leaking at the tip. You wrapped your hand around him, stroking slowly, and Logan's breath hitched.
"Careful, darlin'," he warned, his voice strained. "Been wanting this too long to end it early."
He pushed you back onto the bed, settling between your spread thighs. The head of his cock brushed against your entrance and you both groaned. Logan braced himself on his forearms above you, his eyes locked on yours.
"You sure about this?" he asked, his voice rough but gentle. "Once I start, I don't know if I'll be able to stop."
You wrapped your legs around his waist, pulling him closer. "I'm sure. Please, Logan. I want you."
He kissed you hard as he began pushing inside, swallowing your gasps as he stretched you open. The burn was intense but perfect, your body gradually adjusting to his size. Logan moved slowly, giving you time to adapt, but you could feel the tension in his muscles as he held himself back.
"Fuck," he groaned when he was finally fully seated inside you. "So tight, darlin'. Feel so good around me."
You clutched at his shoulders, panting. "Move," you urged. "Please, I need���"
Logan pulled back and thrust forward again, setting a steady rhythm that had you seeing stars. Each stroke hit something deep inside you that made pleasure spark through your whole body. His hands gripped your hips, holding you steady as he fucked into you with increasing force.
"That's it," he growled, watching your face contort with pleasure. "Take it, Y/N. Take all of me."
Your nails raked down his back as the pressure built inside you again. Logan's thrusts grew harder, faster, driving you both toward the edge. The headboard banged against the wall with each movement but neither of you cared about the noise.
"Logan," you gasped, feeling yourself getting close. "I'm gonnaâah!"
"Come for me," he ordered, his voice rough. One hand slid between your bodies to rub your clit. "Want to feel you come on my cock."
The added stimulation pushed you over the edge. You came with a cry, your body clenching around him as waves of pleasure crashed over you. Logan growled, his rhythm faltering as your walls pulsed around him.
"Fuck, Y/N," he groaned, his thrusts growing erratic. "Where do you wantâ"
"Inside," you gasped, still riding the aftershocks. "Please, Logan. Wanna feel you."
He cursed, his hips snapping forward a few more times before he buried himself deep with a growl, spilling inside you. You could feel him pulsing, filling you up as he collapsed onto his forearms above you.
For several long moments, the only sound was your heavy breathing. Logan's forehead rested against yours, his eyes closed as he caught his breath. You ran your hands up and down his back, feeling the sweat-slick skin under your palms.
Finally, he pulled out carefully and rolled onto his side, pulling you with him. You winced slightly at the soreness between your legs, but it was a good kind of ache. Logan's arms wrapped around you, holding you close against his chest.
---
Logan let out a low groan as he woke, the bed beneath him feeling far too comfortable, unfamiliar in a way that immediately set him on edge. It took a second for his mind to catch up, piecing together where he was and, more importantly, who he was with.
He didnât need to look over to feel the warmth beside him, or the way your hair fanned out across the pillow. It hit him all at onceâthe heat of your skin against his, the way youâd leaned into him last night, confident, unrestrained. He opened his eyes, gaze finding you lying beside him, face soft and peaceful in sleep, an arm draped over his chest as if youâd claimed him in the night.
Logan sighed, glancing at the ceiling, but couldnât help looking down at you again, still asleep and blissfully unaware of the storm in his head. Heâd known it was a bad idea from the start, coming upstairs with you last night, letting his guard down. But damn, when youâd gotten close, pushing him toward that chair with that look in your eyesâheâd been gone the second youâd touched him.
He was even further gone when he had finally kissed youâit was one of his biggest regrets the last time he had seen you back in 1943âhe never held you the way he wanted to. Too afraid that maybe he was the problem, the reason you kept on dying over and over.
And because of that, he hadnât been this close to you since 1900.
It was strange, being here like thisâletting his guard down after all those lives, all those memories of watching you fade out of his reach. A part of him had always tried to keep a distance, to save himself from the heartbreak he knew was coming. But last night⌠last night, heâd been weak.
He brushed a thumb over your arm without thinking, lost in thought. It was impossible not to wonder, with you lying beside him like this, what it would be like if this time were different. If, just once, he could hold onto you, let himself believe youâd stay.
But he knew better.
His hand lingered on your skin a moment too long, and he felt you stir, your lashes fluttering as you slowly opened your eyes. A soft smile touched your lips when you saw him, and he felt his resolve crack just a little more.
âMorninâ,â he murmured, his voice rougher than heâd meant.
âMmm,â you hummed, still sleepy, your fingers tracing a lazy pattern over his chest. âDidnât think youâd still be here.â You said it lightly, but there was a hint of something else thereârelief, maybe. âGuess I finally wore you out.â
Logan huffed, his lips tugging into a smirk. âGuess so.â
You shifted to look at him, your eyes bright with that familiar mischief. âSo, whatâs your excuse this time?â
He raised a brow. âExcuse?â
âYeah. For pulling away,â you said, your tone casual but pointed. âYouâve always got one.â
Loganâs jaw clenched slightly, and he broke eye contact, looking away. âItâs complicated, Y/N.â
You reached up, cupping his face and guiding his gaze back to you. âThatâs what you always say. Doesnât mean it has to be.â
He was silent for a moment, searching your face. He could feel the weight of his past with you, all those memories stacking up like a dam holding back a flood. But he couldnât let you in on that. Couldnât make you carry the burden of knowing youâd livedâand diedâso many times before. It was his cross to bear, not yours.
âMaybe I just donât want you getting hurt,â he finally said, his voice quieter, a touch raw.
You let out a short, incredulous laugh. âPlease, Logan. You think I donât know what Iâm doing?â
Logan just shook his head, but he couldnât help the small, amused smile that crept onto his face. âYouâre a handful, you know that?â
âIâve heard that once or twice,â you teased, running your hand along his chest. âLucky for you, I donât scare easy.â
That hint of defiance in your voice tugged at something deep inside him, and he caught your hand, holding it in his as he looked into your eyes. âYou say that now. But Iâve got a way of⌠complicating things.â
Your gaze softened, but there was still a spark there, unyielding. âGood thing I like complicated.â
Loganâs eyes darkened, and for a second, he felt that familiar pull, the urge to tell you everythingâto let you in on the truth of why he was here, why he couldnât stay away. But he stopped himself, the weight of all those lost lifetimes bearing down on him again. He couldnât do that to you, not this time.
âThen I guess Iâm stuck with you,â he said, trying to keep his tone light, even though his grip on your hand tightened ever so slightly.
âGuess so,â you replied with a grin, shifting closer. You tilted your head, eyes narrowing as you studied him. âLogan?â
âYeah?â
âAre you ever gonna stop acting like youâre some kind of curse?â Your voice was soft but firm, like you were daring him to argue.
Logan went silent, his gaze flickering away from yours. Youâd hit closer to the truth than you knew.
âDonât know if I can,â he admitted after a pause. âItâs⌠complicated.â He shrugged, hoping youâd leave it at that.
But, of course, you didnât. âThen I guess Iâll just have to keep proving you wrong,â you murmured, pressing a light kiss to his jaw, a warm reassurance that only made him feel the pull of his past even stronger.
He didnât answer, just closed his eyes, letting himself savor this one small, stolen moment with you. Just this once, heâd allow himself that. Because deep down, he knew heâd always lose you in the end.
And this time, he was determined to make it last as long as he could. Maybe, just maybe, even put that ring to use.
---
You were back at the dog shelter, this time staying a little bit longer since one of the workers, Amelia, was out sick.
Lorraine handed you a few leashes, âmind taking some of âem out for a walk?â
You happily grabbed the roped leashes, âof course.â Then you glanced over at Logan, who had been eyeing the dogs with a mix of amusement and reservation. âYou up for walkinâ some too?â
He raised an eyebrow at you, then at the leashes in your hand, but there was a hint of a smirk playing at his lips. âDidnât take you for a dog wrangler, Y/N.â
You laughed, clipping one of the leashes onto a small brown mutt who was practically bouncing with excitement. âCome on, Logan. Whatâre you afraid of? They donât biteâwell, not all of them, anyway.â
Logan chuckled, reluctantly stepping forward. âRight. Long as they donât try to drag me down the street.â
You handed him a leash attached to a shaggy, medium-sized dog with big brown eyes, looking up at him expectantly. âHere. This oneâs named Ringo. Heâs a sweetheart.â
Logan eyed the dog suspiciously before giving the leash a little tug, testing the waters. âRingo, huh?â He knelt down and patted the dogâs head, a faint smile crossing his face as the dog leaned into his touch. âGuess youâre alright.â
You couldnât help but smile at the sight. âSee? He likes you already.â As you finished leashing up a few more of the dogs, you handed the leashes to Logan. âThink you can handle these guys too?â
Logan took the leashes without complaint, looking down at the little group of dogs at his feet. âGuess I donât have much choice.â
âGood answer,â you teased, giving him a wink before heading toward the door. You led the way outside, the two of you walking side-by-side with the dogs trotting happily along. It was a warm day, and the sun was shining down, casting a soft glow over everything.
Logan glanced over at you as you moved down the sidewalk together, the dogs tugging excitedly at their leashes. You had a carefree smile on your face, and he found himself watching you more than the path ahead, the memory of a few nights ago still vivid in his mind. The thought of it sent a thrill through himâyet at the same time, a pang of dread.
âYou always this happy walking dogs, or is it just âcause Iâm here?â he teased, a little smirk tugging at his lips.
You shot him a playful look. âGuess youâll never know.â You nudged him lightly with your shoulder, eyes bright with mischief. âBut if you keep coming with me, you might find out.â
He let out a small laugh, his gaze softening as he looked away. Even after all these years, you could still surprise himâlike the way youâd drag him to places like this or the way you talked about the little things with such enthusiasm. It was one of those qualities he remembered about you from lifetimes ago, and it hadnât changed. It made him feel like maybe, somehow, this was different.
As you walked a little further, one of the dogsâa scruffy little terrierâyipped and tugged at Loganâs leash, trying to chase after a pigeon. He grunted, holding the leash tightly and muttering, âSettle down, mutt. Youâre not goinâ anywhere.â
You laughed, glancing over with an amused smile. âRingoâs got more energy than youâd think, huh?â
Logan shook his head, but he couldnât help but smile. âYeah, well, maybe I should be takinâ notes from him.â He looked at you then, and his expression softened. âYouâve really got a thing for these dogs, donât ya?â
Your smile faded into something more thoughtful as you looked down at the furry pack in front of you. âI dunno. I guess theyâre just⌠easy to be around. They donât care about who my father is or what I doâthey just want someone to be with them, you know?â
Logan nodded, watching the way you interacted with the dogs, your fingers lightly brushing over their heads, your voice soft as you spoke to them. Youâd always had that kindness about you, that gentleness that made him want to believe in something better, something⌠safe.
âYouâre good with âem,â he said quietly, almost to himself.
You looked up at him, a smile in your eyes. âYou know, youâre not so bad with them either, Logan.â
He chuckled, shaking his head. âNah, I think Iâll leave the dog-wranglinâ to you.â
For a while, you walked in comfortable silence, the bustling city around you fading into the background as you wandered through the neighborhood with the dogs. Finally, you reached a small park, and you stopped to let the dogs sniff around.
As they explored, you took a seat on a nearby bench, patting the spot beside you. Logan hesitated for a second before joining you, stretching his legs out in front of him.
You looked over at him, your expression soft. âThanks for coming today. I know this probably isnât your ideal way to spend an afternoon.â
Logan shrugged, trying to act casual, but he couldnât hide the warmth in his gaze. âWouldnât be here if I didnât wanna be,â he said, his voice low.
The sincerity in his words made your heart skip a beat, and you looked away, feeling a little bashful. You fiddled with one of the leashes, clearing your throat. âYou know⌠the more time we spend together, the more I wonder how long youâre planning to stick around.â
He hesitated, his jaw tightening as he considered his answer. He wanted to tell you the truthâthat heâd been watching you, waiting for you, for so many lifetimes. But he couldnât. Instead, he reached out, his hand covering yours where it rested on the bench.
âAs long as youâll have me,â he said quietly.
The words hung between you, and for a moment, it was like the whole world had faded away. You looked up at him, your eyes searching his, trying to read the depths of his expression.
A soft smile touched your lips, and you squeezed his hand. âThen youâre gonna be around for a long time, Logan.â
He felt a strange, hopeful ache in his chest at your words, and for the first time in what felt like forever, he allowed himself to believe that maybe, this time, things could be different.
The dogs barked, breaking the spell, and you both laughed, pulling away as you got up to wrangle them again. But even as you continued on your walk, he stayed close by your side, his hand occasionally brushing yours as you walkedâalmost as if he was reminding himself that you were real, that you were here with him.
---
Late one night, you lay beside Logan in the dim light filtering through the window, the cityâs night sounds a steady hum in the distance. Your head rested on his chest, your fingers tracing lazy circles over the skin above his heart, feeling the steady beat beneath your touch.
Logan shifted slightly, his hand coming up to rest gently on your back. For a long time, he just lay there, watching you in silence, his thumb brushing along your spine. You could tell he was relaxed, but there was something elseâa quiet intensity in the way his gaze lingered on you, a heaviness in the air that made your heart race.
âWhatâre you thinkinâ about?â you murmured, letting your fingers trail up to his collarbone. You glanced up at him, catching the faintest hint of a smile as he met your eyes.
âJust⌠wonderinâ how I got roped into all this,â he said, the corner of his mouth lifting. But the glint in his eyes gave him away, and you saw something softer there.
âYeah? Doesnât seem like you mind too much.â You smirked, giving his chest a light pat. âIâd almost say youâre gettinâ attached.â
He snorted, pulling you a little closer, his arm tightening around you. âCould say the same for you,â he replied, his voice low, almost teasing. âYouâre insatiable, yâknow that?â
You laughed, and the sound was soft in the quiet room. âYouâre the one who keeps showinâ up, Logan. If you wanted me to behave, youâd stay away.â
He raised an eyebrow, clearly amused. âMaybe I donât want you to behave.â
Your fingers stilled on his chest, and you looked up at him with a mischievous glint in your eye. âSo you like me like this, then? A little reckless⌠a little spoiled?â you teased.
He chuckled, his eyes softening as he looked at you. âYeah,â he murmured, voice barely above a whisper. âThink I do.â
You felt a warmth spread through you at his words, and you settled back against his chest, letting your hand rest over his heart. For a while, neither of you said anything, the silence comfortable, his warmth grounding you. It was a rare kind of peaceâone that youâd come to cherish whenever you were with him.
But then, curiosity got the better of you, and you lifted your head, giving him a thoughtful look. âLogan,â you began, your voice hesitant. âHow long are you gonna stick around? I mean⌠I know my dad thinks youâre just here for protection, but⌠it feels like more than that.â
Loganâs gaze darkened, a flash of something unreadable passing over his face. He glanced away, his jaw tensing as he seemed to search for the right words. âAs long as you want me here, Iâm not goinâ anywhere.â
The weight of his words hung between you, and you felt your heart skip a beat. âThen donât,â you whispered, leaning up to press a soft kiss to his cheek. âI donât want you to.â
He didnât say anything in response, but his hand slipped up to cup the back of your head, pulling you down into a slow, lingering kiss. There was something different about it this time, a quiet desperation that made your pulse quicken, like he was trying to hold on to this moment, to keep it from slipping away.
When you finally pulled back, you searched his eyes, wondering what was going through his mind. âYouâre not gonna let me go, are you?â
A small smile tugged at his lips, though his gaze was still shadowed. âNot a chance, darlinâ.â
You felt a surge of affection for him then, this man whoâd somehow become both your protector and your closest confidant. He was rough around the edges, guarded and distant with everyone elseâbut with you, he was different. You brought out a softness in him, a warmth that felt as though it had been buried for a long, long time.
Without thinking, you reached up and brushed a lock of hair from his forehead, your fingertips lingering against his skin. âYou know, for a guy whoâs supposed to be my bodyguard, youâre doing a terrible job at keeping things professional,â you teased, though there was no bite in your words.
Logan let out a quiet laugh, shaking his head. âYouâre the one makinâ things complicated, Y/N.â
âMaybe.â You smirked, your fingers still tracing over his chest. âBut you donât seem to mind.â
He looked at you then, something fierce in his eyes, and for a moment, you saw a glimpse of the man heâd beenâa man whoâd loved and lost, whoâd carried scars from lifetimes past. You wondered if he would ever tell you his story, if he would ever let you in on the secrets he guarded so closely.
But for now, you were content with the silence, with the feel of his heartbeat beneath your hand, with the quiet reassurance that he wasnât going anywhere.
As the night wore on, you lay there together, wrapped up in each other, the world outside fading away. And for the first time in a long time, you felt like you were exactly where you were meant to be.
---
Your father had asked you to come to his office in the spacious house. At first it was nothing but muffled voices from outside the door, until Logan heard your father speak again, for a longer period of time, causing your own voice to rise.
While Logan couldnât make out the words you were saying even with his enhanced hearing, he could tell you werenât happy. Your voice carried that sharp edge you only got when something really struck a nerve, and judging by the way you didnât hold back, it had to be serious.
Logan lingered just outside the heavy, mahogany door of your fatherâs office, his fists clenched as he heard your voice rising behind it. It was clear you were upset, and whatever was being discussed inside, you didnât like it. Heâd seen you frustrated, angry even, but never like thisâthere was a desperation in your tone that sent a chill through him.
Moments later, the door flew open, and you stormed out, cheeks flushed with anger, eyes flashing as you spotted him. You barely paused, brushing past him, but Logan caught your wrist, stopping you in your tracks.
âY/N,â he said, his voice low. âWhat happened?â
You turned to face him, anger and hurt swirling in your eyes. âHeâs⌠heâs marrying me off, Logan. To that family. After everything he promised meâhe said heâd never force me into something like this.â
Loganâs expression hardened. âWhat are you talkinâ about? He canât just⌠marry you off like some kind of deal.â
Your hands were shaking as you brushed a stray lock of hair behind your ear, struggling to keep your composure. âApparently, he can. Thereâs been this feud with the Romano family for years, and he says this is the only way to keep the peace. To protect me. Protect us.â
Loganâs jaw clenched. He felt a familiar anger rising in him, a deep, protective instinct heâd been fighting to keep under wraps. âSo, heâs just gonna throw you into a marriage you donât want? You donât even know this guy, do you?â
You shook your head, looking away. âI met him once. He was⌠polite enough. But thatâs not the point, Logan. I donât want to marry himâor anyone like this. My father always said heâd let me choose, that he wouldnât⌠sell me off.â The bitterness in your tone stung, your gaze distant as if replaying the conversation.
Logan searched your face, feeling an ache he couldnât put into words. âAnd he knows how you feel about this?â
You swallowed, nodding. âI told him, but he says I donât understand the bigger picture, that this is whatâs best for everyone.â You gave a hollow laugh, looking down. âFor everyone but me.â
He felt a pang of guilt, knowing he was just a bodyguard, technically part of the arrangement meant to keep you safe from any threats. But you were more than just a job to him, and the thought of you being forced into something like this made his blood boil. He let out a rough breath, stepping closer. âY/N, you donât have to go along with this. Not if you donât want to.â
Your gaze softened as you looked up at him. âAnd what am I supposed to do, Logan? Run off in the middle of the night?â You gave a small, bitter smile. âI donât even know where Iâd go.â
He didnât hesitate, his voice dropping low. âThen we go together. If you donât wanna go through with this, weâll figure somethinâ else out.â
Your breath hitched at his words, and for a moment, the anger and hurt seemed to fade, replaced by something warmer, more uncertain. âYouâd really⌠leave everything?â
He shrugged, almost nonchalant, but there was a fierce determination in his eyes. âI got no reason to stay here if youâre not here, too.â
You hesitated, torn between the depth of his offer and the weight of the decision you knew would follow. Finally, you gave a small nod, as if grounding yourself in the moment. âI donât know whatâs gonna happen, Logan, but⌠I just need to know youâre here. That Iâm not going through this alone.â
He reached out, tucking a loose strand of hair behind your ear, his touch lingering. âIâm not goinâ anywhere, Y/N. You got my word on that.â
There was a silence between you, thick and charged, each of you processing the weight of everything unsaid. His gaze stayed locked on yours, and for a moment, the anger and fear in your eyes softened, replaced by something closer to relief. And then, almost impulsively, you took his hand, squeezing it tight.
âThank you, Logan. I⌠I needed to hear that,â you said softly, glancing away before meeting his gaze again, vulnerability written all over your face. âJust⌠donât let go, okay?â
He gave your hand a reassuring squeeze, his voice barely above a whisper. âNot a chance, darlinâ.â
---
Nancy was doing your hair once again for the dinner with the Romano family. You had tried everything over the past few weeks, trying to convince your father that this didnât have to happen. That he promised you he would never do this.
But no matter what you did, he was firm in his stance, "you're getting married to Clyde, and that's final."
You sat still, staring at your reflection in the mirror as Nancy pinned up the last of your curls. Your face looked composed, serene even, but beneath it, there was a storm brewingâa knot of anger and dread you couldnât shake. Every time you thought about that dinner tonight, your stomach twisted. Clyde Romano. A stranger. And yet, your father had decided this was your future, and nothing you said seemed to change his mind.
Nancy, sensing the tension, placed a comforting hand on your shoulder. "Itâll be alright, Y/N. Youâll be surrounded by family."
Family. Right. But none of them seemed to understand how trapped you felt. You forced a tight-lipped smile, nodding. "Thanks, Nancy."
As she stepped back, there was a light knock at the door. You turned to see Logan standing there, looking slightly uncomfortable in his formal attire but as steadfast as ever. His gaze softened as he took in your appearance, though he quickly masked it.
"Didnât mean to interrupt," he said, glancing between you and Nancy. "Just wanted to make sure youâre ready."
Nancy finished adjusting your hair and excused herself, leaving you alone with Logan. You looked at him, searching his face, hoping for some kind of lifeline.
"Logan," you murmured, voice barely above a whisper. "I feel like Iâm being dragged somewhere I canât escape from."
He stepped closer, his expression darkening as he listened. âYouâre not alone in this, Y/N. You know Iâm with you, whatever you decide.â His hand reached out, brushing against your arm, his touch grounding you.
You drew in a shaky breath, steadying yourself. âWhat if I decide to just⌠disappear?â you asked, half-joking but mostly serious.
Loganâs eyes met yours, and you saw the unspoken resolve there. âThen Iâll be right behind you. Doesnât matter where.â
For a moment, you let yourself believe itâthat you could simply run, with Logan at your side. But reality crashed back in, and you dropped your gaze.
"I wish it were that simple," you whispered, clenching your fists. "But if I leave, it could tear everything apart."
Loganâs hand settled over yours, his grip firm and reassuring. "Then we make it through tonight. And tomorrow, we figure out the rest. Youâre not facing this alone, darlinâ. Not as long as Iâm here."
You looked up at him, finding strength in his gaze. Heâd been your rock through all of this, his presence steady and unwavering. And tonight, that was what you needed most.
âAlright,â you murmured, giving him a small, grateful smile. âLetâs go face this⌠together.â
He nodded, his grip on your hand a silent promise. Whatever came next, you knew heâd be there, just as he always had been. And with that thought, you found the courage to head downstairs to face your familyâand the Romanosâone more time.
---
The dinner was at an Italian restaurant, one your father owned as cover for his business. Your dad sat at the head of the table while Clydeâs father sat at the other end. In front of you was your uncle Ermanno, who was also your dadâs consigliere, while Clyde sat next to you.
Logan, along with the other bodyguards, stood watch at the entrance of the private dining room, their silent gazes sweeping the place. He wore his usual hard expression, though his eyes softened just a touch when they found you across the room. Heâd been watching you all nightâcatching every little shift, each moment you looked down or forced a smile, every subtle tightening of your hand on the tablecloth.
Clyde Romano leaned in a little closer, his arm casually brushing against yours as he tried to make small talk. "So, Y/N, I hear youâve been helping out at a shelter?"
You nodded, barely meeting his eyes. âYeah, I volunteer with the dogs mostly. ItâsâŚnice to get away from all this sometimes.â You forced a smile, trying to keep things polite. You could feel your fatherâs gaze on you, watching for any misstep.
Clyde smiled back, but it felt too rehearsed. âWell, once weâre married, you wonât have to worry about shelters or anything like that. Youâll have enough responsibilities as a Romano.â
You felt your stomach twist at his words. Loganâs gaze sharpened from across the room as he picked up on the slight shift in your expression. You shot him a quick look, your eyes pleading for any kind of rescue. Loganâs jaw tightened, and for a brief moment, he almost looked like heâd step in. But he stayed put, his hands clenched behind his back.
Instead, he looked for the smallest opening. Just as Clydeâs attention was pulled away by his father, Logan slipped into view, leaning down beside you. âYou alright?â he murmured, low enough that only you could hear.
âNot even close,â you whispered back, your eyes fixed on your glass. âHeâs already talking about our future like⌠like itâs set in stone.â
Loganâs eyes flickered with something fierce. âWeâll get through this, Y/N. Tonightâs just another show. Nothing more.â His fingers brushed the back of your chair, the barely-there touch sending a wave of calm through you.
But Clydeâs voice cut back in before Logan could say anything more. âY/N, we were thinking of heading to Italy for the honeymoon. Itâll be a good chance to meet the rest of the family there.â
Your heart sank further. Italy. An entire ocean away, away from everything you knew, from everyone who mattered to you. âItaly,â you echoed, your voice strained but steady.
âYeah. The Romano estates are beautifulâbeaches, vineyards⌠a real paradise.â He seemed oblivious to your hesitation, already dreaming up plans youâd had no say in. Your father looked pleased, nodding his approval from his end of the table.
Logan straightened, but the look he gave you was unmistakable: You donât have to do this.
You swallowed, shifting in your seat as Clyde rambled on. When his focus shifted to his own father again, you leaned back just enough to whisper to Logan, âIâm not sure I can keep pretending.â
Loganâs expression softened, and for a second, he let a hint of his guard down. âYou donât have to, darlinâ.â His voice was low, almost tender, meant for you alone. âSay the word, and we walk outta here. Right now.â
The thought made your heart skip, but your gaze drifted toward your father, seated across the table with a look of satisfaction. Leaving wasnât just about you; it would mean defying him, challenging the life heâd molded for you. The thought felt like a mountain on your shoulders.
âI canât just walk away,â you said quietly. âHeâs⌠heâd never forgive me.â
Loganâs hand brushed yours under the table, a quiet show of support. âMaybe heâs the one who should be asking for forgiveness,â he murmured, his thumb tracing a light circle over your knuckles. The warmth of his touch settled something in you, steadying your breath.
You gave a tiny nod, squeezing his hand for just a second before pulling away. Logan straightened, stepping back to his post but still keeping his gaze on you. Clyde was oblivious, caught up in a conversation with his father about future business plans, each word feeling like a nail in the coffin.
Dinner dragged on, a blur of forced laughter and stiff conversation. Every time you felt yourself sinking, you looked toward Logan. He was there, solid and watchful, like a silent promise of something real in a room full of facades.
Eventually, the families began to wind down, talk shifting to more casual chatter. Clyde, emboldened by the nightâs success, reached over and took your hand, his grip possessive. âSoon, youâll be part of the family, Y/N. Youâll see. Youâll come to love it.â
Your mind screamed at the thought, every fiber of you wanting to pull away. But you held still, not daring to make a scene. Loganâs gaze narrowed, his jaw set as he took in the sight of Clydeâs hand around yours.
Finally, as the night came to an end and the families started to stand, Clyde leaned in with a smug smile. âReady to go? I thought weâd take a walk, just the two of us.â
Before you could answer, Logan was there, stepping in with a casual yet firm presence. âMr. Romano,â he said, addressing Clyde but looking right at you, âyour father asked to speak with you in private before you head out.â
Clyde frowned but nodded, reluctantly releasing your hand. âIâll be back soon, Y/N.â He disappeared toward the far end of the room, leaving you alone with Logan.
You let out a slow breath, the tension finally loosening from your shoulders. âThank you,â you whispered, looking up at him, gratitude spilling from every word.
Logan gave a slight nod. âCouldnât let him drag you out there without a say.â His voice was rough, but his eyes softened as he held your gaze. âYouâre not alone in this, Y/N. Whatever happens⌠you got me.â
The weight of the night lifted just a little, and for a moment, you almost believed you had a choice in all of this.
---
âA week?â you repeated, your voice barely above a whisper as you stood in your fatherâs office. The weight of the word seemed to pull you under, even as you fought to keep your voice steady.
Your fatherâs expression was impassive, arms crossed as he looked at you. âYes, Y/N. The Romano family wants to move quickly. They think itâs best, and I agree. Itâs time you take on this responsibility for the family.â
Your jaw clenched. You remembered the promises he made, back when you were younger, that heâd never force you into something like this. âI just⌠I donât understand. You always saidââ
âPeople change, Y/N,â he interrupted, his tone firm. âThis is whatâs best for you and for us. For the family.â
You shook your head, feeling a rush of helplessness. âAnd what about what I want? Iâve been trying to tell you for weeks that I donât want this, and youâre not listening.â
He exhaled sharply, the kind of sigh that signaled his patience was running thin. âThis isnât about what you want. I didnât raise you to be selfish.â
âSelfish?â The word stung, and you couldnât help the surge of anger that rose within you. âIâm asking for my life. How is that selfish?â
He frowned, unyielding. âEnough, Y/N. This is happening. Weâre done discussing it.â
Your breath hitched, but you forced yourself to stay composed. The walls of the office seemed to close in on you, the reality of it settling heavy and cold. You had a weekâseven daysâto either submit to this life heâd chosen for you or⌠what? You didnât even know.
Without another word, you turned and left, fighting the urge to slam the door behind you. The hall felt stifling as you walked out, your thoughts churning.
When you reached your room, Logan was there, waiting. The moment he saw your face, he stiffened. âWhat happened?â His voice was a low rumble, the concern clear.
âA week,â you whispered, barely able to meet his gaze. âI have a week before he marries me off to Clyde.â
Loganâs jaw tightened, and you could see the flash of anger in his eyes. He stepped closer, his hand moving to rest on your shoulder. âSo thatâs it, then? Heâs just⌠throwing you to that bastard?â
You nodded, the words catching in your throat. âI donât know what to do, Logan. I tried everything, but he wonât listen. Heâs set on it.â
Loganâs hand slipped down, finding yours and giving it a reassuring squeeze, his rough fingers warm and grounding. You tightened your grip, the frustration and helplessness boiling inside you finally having somewhere to go.
âIâm supposed to just go along with it,â you muttered, bitterness seeping into your words. âAct like Iâm thrilled to be Clydeâs obedient little wife. Like my lifeâs just⌠his to take.â
Loganâs gaze darkened. âItâs not. You know that. And anyone who tries to take it without your say? They got me to deal with.â His voice was low and dangerous, a promise just for you.
You looked up, searching his face, a flicker of hope stirring. âBut what can we do, Logan? Heâs not going to listen to me. And if I push back too hard⌠I donât know what heâll do.â
âThen let me get you out of here,â Logan said, leaning in closer. His voice softened, gentler now. âWe can leave, right now if you want. Just say the word.â
Your heart twisted painfully, the temptation so fierce you almost said yes then and there. But reality clawed its way back, the weight of your fatherâs expectations and the tight grip he kept on every part of your life. Leaving would mean giving up everythingâand, deep down, you werenât sure you could risk it.
âWhat about my dad?â you whispered, feeling the weight of it pressing down again. âHeâs⌠heâd see it as betrayal, Logan. And what if he goes after you?â
A flicker of something familiar crossed Loganâs face, a shadow from a life you couldnât remember but that he clearly did. âY/N, donât worry about me,â he murmured. âBeen through worse.â He squeezed your hand a little tighter, his thumb brushing over your knuckles in a gesture so tender it nearly undid you. âAnd if heâs got a problem, then he can take it up with me.â
You let out a shaky breath, feeling the anger and fear give way just a bit. âYou say that now, but you havenât seen how he gets when people cross him. Heâd never forgive me, Logan. Heâd never forgive us.â
Loganâs hand moved to cup your face, his touch steadying you as his eyes met yours. âThen we donât need his forgiveness. We get you out, and I keep you safe. Whatever comes after, we face it together.â
The fierce certainty in his voice sent a warmth flooding through you, your resolve hardening under his gaze. âBut Clyde, the Romanoâs⌠they wonât just let it go.â
A smirk tugged at Loganâs mouth, the edge of defiance clear. âThen theyâll learn what happens when they mess with you. Ainât nobodyâs right to take away your freedom, Y/N. Not your old man, not Clyde, not anyone.â
A beat of silence stretched between you, his hand still warm against your cheek. Your fingers tightened around his, and for a second, all the anger and dread faded, leaving just you and him in the quiet of the room.
âWhat about⌠us?â The words slipped out before you could stop them, and for a second, you held your breath, waiting for his reaction.
Loganâs eyes softened, his gaze never leaving yours. âWhat about us, darlinâ?â He brushed a thumb along your cheek, his voice dropping to a low murmur. âYou think Iâd just leave you here to face this on your own?â
His words sent a rush of warmth through you, and before you knew it, you were leaning into him, his presence steady and unshakable. He let out a low sigh, wrapping his arm around your shoulders and pulling you closer, his other hand tracing gentle circles over your back.
âYouâre all Iâve got in this,â you whispered, feeling the tears prick at the corners of your eyes. âI canât lose you, too.â
âYou wonât,â he murmured, pressing a kiss to the top of your head, his hold tightening just enough to reassure you. âNot now, not ever.â
You stayed like that for a long moment, wrapped up in his embrace, the weight of everything slipping away in his arms. But eventually, reality crept back in, and you pulled back, catching the flicker of resolve in his gaze.
âIf we do thisâŚâ You paused, steadying yourself. âIf we leave, we need a plan.â
Logan gave a small nod, his hand still resting on yours. âWeâll figure it out. Tonight, weâre just gettinâ you through this.â
It was a promise, simple and unbreakable, and for the first time in weeks, you felt a flicker of hope stirring deep inside you.
---
The rehearsal dinner was held in a private room at the church a few days later; a grand, echoing place with gilded walls and tall stained-glass windows that cast colored light over everything. Clyde, his parents, and your family were all gathered, discussing wedding arrangements like it was a done deal, each word chipping away at any illusion of control you had left.
Logan and the other bodyguards stood at a respectful distance, keeping watch. He tried to keep his gaze neutral, but his eyes lingered on you longer than necessary, catching every forced smile and stiff nod you gave.
As the minister went through the motions, you and Clyde practiced exchanging vows. You held his hands, repeating words that felt like a foreign languageâlifeless, meaningless. Your eyes drifted toward Logan, and he gave you the barest nod, grounding you with that single, unspoken promise.
After the vows, Clyde leaned in close, his voice low and smug. âI think youâll come to love our life together, Y/N. Just give it time.â
You forced a polite smile, biting back the words you wanted to say. Out of the corner of your eye, you saw Logan clench his fists, his face darkening.
Finally, as the rehearsal ended and people began drifting off, you made your way to a quiet corner, needing a moment alone. Logan slipped over to you, his movements subtle as he came to stand beside you.
âAre you alright?â he asked, his voice softer now that it was just the two of you.
You shook your head, feeling that familiar knot of dread twist tighter. âLogan, I donât think I can go through with this. But I donât know if I can run, either. Iâm⌠ Iâm stuck.â
He took a deep breath, his gaze intense as he looked down at you. âWhat if I told you that you didnât have to decide tonight?â he asked quietly. âThat we could just⌠take it one day at a time. You donât have to have all the answers right now.â
The tension in your shoulders eased a bit, and you met his eyes, finding strength in the certainty there. He wasnât pushing you, wasnât forcing anything on you. He was just⌠here, with you, in whatever way you needed.
âOkay,â you whispered, nodding slowly. âOne day at a time.â
Logan gave a small, reassuring smile. âThatâs all we need, darlinâ.â His hand brushed your shoulder, lingering just a second longer than necessary before he stepped back.
---
The day of the wedding had arrived, and you were dolled up, your makeup and hair were perfect, and your wedding dress was heavy, constricting, and large.
Once the makeup artists and hair stylists left, you had fled to the bathroom in the bridal suite and were currently hunched over the toilet. You hadnât thrown upâyetâbut you could feel the nausea and anxiousness rising.
You braced yourself against the counter, taking deep breaths as you tried to calm the twisting feeling in your stomach. The dress felt like a vice, heavy and restrictive, pressing on every nerve, suffocating in a way that went beyond fabric and lace. You squeezed your eyes shut, hoping the queasiness would pass.
A knock at the door pulled you from the spinning in your head.
âY/N?â Nancyâs soft, steady voice filtered through, full of that motherly concern youâd come to rely on all your life.
You took a steadying breath, swallowing hard before calling out, âCome in, Nancy.â
The door creaked open, and Nancy stepped inside, closing it quietly behind her. Her gaze immediately softened as she took in the look on your face, her expression a mix of sympathy and something elseâresolve, maybe.
âOh, cara mia,â she murmured, reaching out to place a hand on your shoulder. âYou donât look well. This whole businessâitâs too much, isnât it?â
You managed a shaky nod. âI⌠I donât know if I can do this, Nancy. Every time I think about it, I justâŚâ You trailed off, not sure how to put into words the suffocating dread that had settled over you.
She gave you a small, encouraging squeeze. âYou know,â she said quietly, âthere are other paths besides the one your father chose for you. And you donât have to walk it alone.â
Your heart skipped at her words. âYou⌠youâd help me? Even if IâŚ?â
Nancy nodded, a spark of fierce protectiveness in her eyes. âLoganâs already got your things in his car,â she murmured, her voice barely above a whisper. âIf youâre ready to go, heâs waiting.â
You blinked back tears before grabbing one of her hands, ây- you want me to go?â
âSĂ. Your father is a bastardo, breaking that promise him and your mother made.â She squeezed your hand, âLoganâs a good man. Iâve seen the way he looks at you. He wonât let you down.â
You swallowed hard, Nancyâs words settling like a quiet fire in your chest. She was right. Your father had broken his promise, and you didnât owe him your life just because he controlled every other part of it.
With a shaky exhale, you gave her a nod. âAlright⌠Iâll go.â
Nancyâs face softened, relief mingling with pride. âGood girl. Now, take this.â She pressed a small envelope into your hand. âCash. Just in case.â
You looked down at it, blinking back tears. âThank you, Nancy. For everything.â
She pulled you into a hug, her hand stroking your back gently. âGo, cara mia. Go live your life.â She pulled back, eyes glinting with fierce determination. âAnd donât look back.â
You nodded, holding onto that resolve as you slipped out of the bathroom and made your way down the hall, heart pounding. Every step felt heavier, weighed down by fear and the voice in the back of your mind that told you this was dangerous, reckless. But when you stepped outside and saw Logan waiting by his car, the weight lifted.
He looked up, his gaze intense but soft, like heâd been waiting for this moment just as long as you had. âYou ready?â
You hesitated, just for a moment, before giving him a small nod. âYeah. Letâs get out of here.â
Logan opened the passenger door for you, helping you in, his hand lingering on yours for a second longer than necessary. He closed the door, then climbed into the driverâs seat, starting the engine with a low rumble that matched the pulse pounding in your ears.
As he pulled out of the churchâs parking lot, the weight of the decision hit you again. You were leaving everything behindâthe security, the expectations, the people whoâd shaped your entire life. But with each passing second, the fear melted away, replaced by a strange, liberating sense of excitement.
Logan glanced over, noticing the small smile tugging at your lips. âYou donât look so panicked now.â
You shook your head, unable to hide your grin. âIâm not. Not with you here.â
He gave a soft chuckle, that familiar warmth in his gaze. âGood. Because weâve got a long drive ahead of us.â
You settled back, feeling more at ease than youâd felt in months. There was silence for a moment, comfortable and charged, before you turned to him, voice barely a whisper.
âWhere are we going?â
Logan smirked. âAnywhere but here.â
You laughed softly, relaxing into your seat. The road stretched ahead, open and endless, and for the first time in a long while, the future felt like something you could shape.
logan is 141 years old and reader is around 23-25 years old
what!? is that a happy ending? who would've thought... next up, is origins!
#logan howlett x reader#logan howlett x you#wolverine x reader#wolverine x you#james howlett x reader#james howlett x you#logan howlett#logan howlett fanfiction#logan howlett x fem!reader#logan howlett fic#i love you in every time
329 notes
¡
View notes
Text
Two Babies (dad!Rafe Cameron x fem!reader)
Word Count: 5.4k
Warnings:Â angst, mentions of smut, pregnancy
Summary:Â Y/N is pregnant again before sheâs ready.
Author's Note: Hello! Please enjoy my first Rafe one shot. I would love to expand on this couple so if you have any requests or any blurbs you'd like me to explore, please send me a message! As always, likes and reblogs are much appreciated - it helps more than you know. Happy reading :)
âWell, well, well. If it isnât my favorite tiny human,â the pediatrician chimed as she kicked the door to the small examination room shut with her sneaker.
âYou must say that to all of the parents that you see,â Y/N blushed, unable to hide the smile that tugged on the corners of her lips.
âI do, but this is one of the rare times when I actually mean it. Those blonde curls! Are you freakin' kidding me?â
She padded over to the miniature exam table to get a better look at the infant that was lying contently on her back and chewing on her pudgy albeit still tiny fingers.Â
âLetâs take a look at how youâre doing, sweet pea.â
The doctor, Melanie, lifted the stethoscope that was looped around her neck and placed it into her ears. Listening to the babyâs heartbeat to check for any abnormalities, she couldnât help but give a sympathetic frown when the tiny girl under her tensed up from the cool touch of the metal.
âNurseâs notes say sheâs put on quite a bit. Sheâs finally caught up to her age group in weight. Iâm assuming breastfeeding is going better for you both now?â
Melanie lovingly squeezed the extra chub around the baby girl's thighs.
âYeah. We donât really use bottles anymore. Finally got her to latch on and now it seems like all she wants to do it eat,â Y/N chuckled.
âGood! Thatâs good. Thereâs nothing wrong with formula like we talked about, so don't overexert yourself if becomes too demanding. Breastfeeding is cheaper though," Melanie chucked, though in her head she was kicking herself. As if this family is in any need to save money. "Is she hitting the milestones? Rolling over? Propping her head up? Babbling a bit?â she continued.
âBabbling, definitely. She keeps us up sometimes because we can hear her talking to herself through the monitor at night,â Y/N poked her tongue out at her daughter in an attempt to get her to smile.
âHaving a bit of trouble propping herself up though. She can only do it for a little bit and then sheâll give up. Sheâs got Rafe's big head, so Iâm sure itâs a bit of a struggle.â
Melanie laughed loudly at the mention of her patientâs father, admiring Y/N's wittiness even in the absence of her husband. Given the reputation of the Cameron family, others might think the couple were all work and no play, but Melanie had the privilege of getting to know them behind closed doors. While they took doctor's visits seriously, always paying close attention to what the doctors and nurses had to say regarding the health of their firstborn, her experience with the Cameron's changed her outlook completely. Y/N and Rafe were warm, welcoming, and quite funny sometimes - always making jests at each other or sharing little tid-bits of what their life is like at home. She wished everyone could see them this way. Melanie really wasn't lying when she doted on the little girl, they were the best.
âSheâll get to it eventually. All babies are different. She seems to be coming along quite nicely, though. Nothing abnormal or anything to fuss about. A perfectly healthy six-month-old in my book.â
Y/N sighed in relief, though she knew there was nothing to worry over to begin with.
âHowâs mum doing? You taking care of yourself, too? Youâre just as important as baby.â
âWhen I can. Rafe's really good with her. Heâll take over when he sees me struggling, but it seems like she only wants me these days. Think I might be coming down with something, though. Iâve been feeling awful for a few weeks. Like I got hit by a train. I keep reminding myself to go get checked out, but I always get distracted taking care of her,â Y/N gestured to her daughter that was now drooling onto the parchment liner and staring up at the ceiling as if there was something ornately interesting about the popcorn texture that had been stippled onto it.
âWhen you say, âhit by a train,â what do you mean? I can examine you here if youâd like. As long as itâs nothing serious, I can send you something off to the pharmacy.â
Melanie re-fastened the snaps on the infantâs onesie, making sure not to pinch her chunky legs and placed her back into her motherâs lap.
âUmmm,â Y/N began, âJust extra drained, I guess? Kinda nauseous. Iâve been getting migraines a lot and even when I do get a good nightâs rest, I still feel like I could go back to bed for the rest of the day. Maybe Iâm just exhausted, I donât really know. But it just feels a bit different than being worn out like I have been before.â
She could see the wheels in Melanie's head turning, noting each of her symptoms and trying to align them in a path that would lead her to the root of the problem.
âCan I ask you something that might be a bit personal?â
Y/N nodded, rubbing her fingers absentmindedly along the bridge of her daughterâs socked foot.
âHave you and Rafe been intimate since she was born?â
She was taken aback by the question, not understanding where Melanie was going with this or why it was relevant.
âUmm,â Y/N stuttered, feeling a static-y surge of embarrassment travel up her neck and onto the sides of her face, âYeah. We have.â
A whole fucking lot ever since Iâve been cleared for it, Y/N thought, but kept to herself.
âAnd can you tell me when your last menstrual cycle ended?â
Then it clicked. She genuinely couldnât recall her most recent period and even the thought of what Melanie was alluding to made her stomach twist into thousands of tiny knots.
âI- I donât know. Iâve been so busy with her I donât even really think about whatâs going on with me half of the time.â
Y/N tried to make excuses, anything to avoid the obvious, but judging from the quizzical look on her daughterâs pediatricianâs face, she knew exactly where this was going.
âThereâs no way,â she whispered, âI canât be.â
Melanie's face dropped, now tender and apologetic when she realized that this was news Y/N was not ecstatic to hear.
âI know Iâm a pediatrician, so thatâs obviously the first thing my mind goes to, but can we at least get you to take a blood test? That way weâll know for sure?â
//
Rafe came home to a quiet house. It wasnât unusual, but seeing as it was well after six oâclock in the evening and his wife wasnât in the kitchen making the pasta dish she'd been dying for all week was. Their grocery store had been out of her favorite canned tomatoes for over a week and sheâd nearly tackled Rafe to the ground out of excitement when heâd come home from the grocery store with them the night before. Had he not seen her car in the driveway, he probably wouldnât have even suspected her to be home.
He checked the living room first, and it was desolate apart from the baby pink, quilted playmat on the floor that was littered with a few of his daughterâs favorite rattles and teethers. Y/N's coat and purse were abandoned haphazardly on the couch, almost as if she tossed it aside in a hurry to get somewhere.
âBaby?â Rafe called out.
Nothing.
His head peaked into the nursery, stealthily and quietly in preparation to walk in on his daughter taking her scheduled nap before her actual bedtime. Heâd gotten good at hushing his footfalls to almost complete silence as to not wake her, having made that mistake more than a handful of times.Â
And he was right. There she was, sprawled out in her crib with her arms outstretched over her head like a tiny starfish. Her chubby cheeks were smushed against her bicep, drawing her lips open the tiniest bit so that Rafe could see the tops of her fleshy, pink gums and the barely-there nub of her first tooth peeking through. More than anything, he wanted to wake her up - lift her from the plush mattress and cuddle her close, shower her with kisses and tickle her with his scruff to hear those baby squeals he adored so much, but he needed to find Y/N first.
She had to be in their bedroom, he thought to himself. Maybe she was taking advantage of their baby girl napping to also get some rest. She had been rather exhausted lately. Maybe sheâd had a rough day and was relaxing in the clawfoot, porcelain bathtub that had been the selling point of the home they now lived in. The houses on Figure Eight were lavish, but not all of the bathtubs were - at least that's what Y/N told Rafe. Who was he to question his bride?
Turns out he was right again. Like he had done with the nursery, he held the metal doorknob tightly in his grip to keep the hinges from creeking and pressed it open gently. The room was completely dark, but he could make out the lump underneath the duvet on their king-sized bed as his wife.Â
Good. She was sleeping.Â
He padded across the hardwood floor, still being as quiet as he could until he crossed the threshold of the bathroom. There, he rid himself of the uncomfortable clothes heâd been wearing all day. Curse these professional business meetings that forced him to dress nicely.Â
All throughout the meetings, he wanted nothing more than to be home with his wife and baby, cuddling the afternoon away and watching shitty reality television while his daughter cooed and grunted and gurgled in her baby voice that he loved so much and could listen to all day. He wasn't always this way - he used to love this shit, but something inside him changed indefinitely when his daughter was born. Rafe was a softy now and he wasn't afraid to admit it. Maybe it was the fact that heâd been having to partake in these boring work meetings a lot more lately, which caused him to miss even the smallest aspects of his everyday life like changing diapers or checking the baby monitor eight hundred times throughout the day to make sure his daughter was still breathing. Perhaps heâd just been getting sentimental because she was growing so much these days, but it was an unpleasant feeling nonetheless.
His thoughts were interrupted when he deposited his heavy watch into the dish he kept on the counter and he heard a quiet yet still prominent sniffle among the clattering of metal against the glass dish.
âBaby? You awake?â Rafe peaked his head out from beyond the bathroom door.Â
He saw her body shift under the covers, but she gave no response. So he called out again.
âYou sick or something? Can hear you sniffling."
Nothing.
Pivoting back around to the inside of the bathroom, he quickly shut off the light and carried himself over to her side of the bed where he could see her properly. Her face was tucked into her chin and all that was visible to him was the top of her head.
âHey,â Rafe cooed, petting what he could reach of her hair and speaking even gentler than he had been, âWhatâs wrong?â
And thatâs when he heard it - an almost inaudible choking sound of Y/N trying to catch her breath that immediately let him know she wasnât sick. She had been crying.
âWhoa, baby,â he was already pulling the covers back with force, honestly not caring whether or not she minded the intrusion.
âTell me whatâs going on.â
She was emotionless when he saw what little he could her face, her puffy, bloodshot eyes and swollen lips illuminated by the hallway light being the only indicator that she was upset. She didnât even react to Rafe tugging her head out from where it had been buried in the covers, simply rolling onto her back to stare idly at the ceiling.
âY/N,â he called for his wife again, this time much more stern, âYouâve got to talk to me.â
She took several deep breaths through her nose, allowing her lungs to fill to their maximum capacity before exhaling with a sigh. Rafe could have sworn she was sucking all of the oxygen out of the room along with his patience each time she did so.Â
After what felt like ages, she parted her lips to speak.
âI went to the doctor today.âÂ
âYeah? For the six-month check up, right?â Rafe asked, not seeing why that was important but his mind quickly went to the worst scenario possible despite having just seen his daughter sleeping peacefully in her crib. He cut his eyes towards the hallway in the direction of her nursery before looking back to Y/N.
âIs she alright?â his voice now demanding urgency in the delivery of her response.
âSheâs fine,â she quickly dismissed him, internally kicking herself for making Rafe worry.
âI was telling Melanie about how sick Iâve been lately and she -,â Y/N gulped and rubbed her knuckles against her tired eyes, bracing herself for whatever events unfolded after she said what she was about to say.
âShe, umm. She made me take a pregnancy test.â
Now it was Rafe turn to be speechless. He stared at her with furrowed brows and his mouth slightly agape. His palms suddenly felt clammy against the white sheets that they rested on and his stomach felt like it had turned in on itself from how badly it was churning. Of all of the things he had expected to be wrong with her, this was certainly the last on the list.Â
âAnd?â he asked after what felt like an eternity of staring at her and saying absolutely nothing, though he already knew the answer.
âTen weeks.â
Silent tears now spilled over her eyes and down past her temples. She couldnât even be bothered to wipe them, instead letting them dampen a small patch of hair on either side of her head. Pregnancies werenât supposed to be sad, but somehow, she had barely been able to stop crying since she left the pediatricianâs office.
âHow,â Rafe whispered, moreso to himself than to her.
âI think you know how babies are made, Rafeâ Y/N quipped.
âThat's not what I meant,â Rafe fired back just as quickly, âItâs just...Sheâs still so little.â
He thought of his daughter asleep in the next room. She was the most perfect thing heâs ever seen and on the day that she was born, he knew he wanted nothing more than to fill his and Y/Nâs house with as many blonde, chubby babies as he could fit beds in each room. He just hadnât expected that his only childâs first birthday present would be the gift of being a big sister.Â
It was all too sudden.
âI just donât know how I didnât see it sooner. I mean,â Y/N raised her arms above her head before huffing and letting them fall to her sides, âI guess I was just so caught up with the baby that I hadnât even had a second to think about whatâs going on with me. Itâs like I donât even matter anymore and I-â
âHey, hey now. Don't do that,â Rafe shushed her and curled up next to her frame as she began to sob.
He tucked her head into his neck, hugging her chest tightly as if he was trying to hold the pieces of her together before she shattered. His mind was running a mile per minute. It killed him to see her like this, killed him to be in this situation. The last time they had found out this news, there were happy tears - tears of shock and excitement about taking the next step in building a family. Never had he imagined that the next time they were presented with the very same news, that there would be tears of sadness.
Her voice was muffled against his now wrinkled button-down, but he could still make out what she was saying beneath her blubbers.
âI canât do this.â
âWhat do you mean, honey? Of course you can. I can take more time off work like last time and let the boys handle everything for a bit. I know it's not ideal, but weâll be alright,â he ran his hand up and down her arm in an attempt to soothe her.
âThatâs the problem, Rafe.â
He lifted his chin from here it was resting on the top of her head to look down at her.
âWhat?â
âIt's not ideal. You've only just now gotten back to work full time. You said everything almost fell apart while you were gone. It would fuck everything up. Plus, she's only six months old, Rafe. I can't go through that again so soon."
Rafe paused to break away from her and sit up straight against the headboard, âAre you serious? Of course I can take more time off work. You are more important than anything that could possibly be going on at the office.â He was a bit stunned by her words. She almost sounded annoyed, which didn't sit quite right with Rafe.
âBut do you see whatâs happening? Everything is fucked.â
His voice wasnât so calm anymore.
âNo, Y/N. I honestly donât. I mean I know this is all happening much earlier than we expected, but what else is there to do? Will you please tell me what you're getting at, because Iâm starting to get upset.âÂ
Rafe's lips were pressed in a thin, straight line and his nostrils flared with every breath. Why was she being like this?Â
âI donât know what Iâm fucking getting at. Iâm just overwhelmed."
âAnd you think Iâm not? I'm trying my best to keep it together for your sake if you havenât noticed,â it almost condescending the way the words rolled off his tongue.
âOh, excuse me,â Y/N laughed sarcastically.
âDidnât realize you were the one that's pregnant. Didnât realize youâre the one that has to grow all big and gross and swollen and be in pain every fucking day to the point where walking to the bathroom feels like a fucking marathon. Didnât realize youâre the one that has to feel like you're burning alive from the inside out for hours and then just have to lay there while a doctor youâve never seen before stitches you up because it literally tore your insides apart. Didnât realize you-â
âFor fuckâs sake, I get it!â Rafe was yelling now. They hadn't argued like this since they were much younger, and he absolutely hated it.
âItâs not the same and Iâm sorry for suggesting that it was. I'm not sure what you want me to say though. Iâm sorry? Is that it? Sorry for getting you pregnant? Sorry for having a job that helps us get anything we want for ourselves and our family? Sorry that I do everything I possibly can to keep you and the baby and everyone else on the fucking planet happy?â
âYouâre being an asshole, Rafe,â she was just as angry as he was, scowl evident on her face even in their dimly lit bedroom.
âAnd youâre not making any fucking sense! Are you telling me you donât want to keep it? Because I never fucking said that you have to.â
The thought had crossed her mind on the drive home from the doctorâs office, but the feeling left as quickly as it approached. Sheâd taken one look at her daughter in her car seat through the rear view mirror happily sucking on her teether and knew without a doubt that she couldnât.
She felt a tidal wave of fresh, salty tears peaking and about to crash over her.
âI donât want - fuck,â she put her head in her hands.Â
âI just-,â and then she broke.
Sobs wracked her body, making her shoulders shake up and down. She wasnât even sure how she had any more left to get out, but it just kept coming. Over and over and over again until it felt like she was being suffocated and that no one was going to save her. She felt Rafe's hands move to rest on her shoulder blades and heard gentle, cooing-like sounds coming out of his mouth, but she couldnât make out what he had said over the sounds of her own wailing.
âBaby, itâs okay. Just breathe. Itâs alri-â
His attempt at subduing her was cut short by shrill cries coming from the digital monitor that sat on their nightstand. Rafe peeked over his shoulder at the screen, seeing that their daughter had woken from her nap and was now demanding the attention of her parents. He couldnât help but wince as he watched her socked feet flail around in the crib; it was without a doubt that the screaming match theyâd just had that stirred her from her sleep, and that hurt him just as much as it did to see his wife crying right in front of him.
Y/N heard it too, somehow. Perhaps it was because sheâd been trained to react to every minute sound that she made and could recognize her cries from a mile away in the paralyzing fear that something was wrong with her or maybe it was because she looking for any and every excuse to get Rafe's hands off of her so she could get away from him and escape the argument theyâd just had without making the situation any worse than it already was. Regardless, she turned her own neck to peer at the monitor and sighed heavily.
âIâll go, Y/N. Just stay here.â
âNo. I got it. Itâs after seven. Sheâs probably hungry.â
She shrugged Rafe's hands away from her shoulders like his touch physically pained her and climbed over his body and off the bed without another word, not even giving Rafe the chance to take her hand and help her over the edge of the mattress. He knew she wasnât going anywhere but down the hall and into the nursery, but he couldnât help but feel like she was walking away from everything.
//
Y/N stared her daughter while she nursed. She started from the top of her head that was riddled with sandy blonde curls and worked her way down to the tips of her toes that would occasionally flex themselves out of habit. Her hair? Undoubtedly Rafe's. Her eyes? A perfect, entrancing shade of blue akin to Rafe's. Her lips? The same almost inhuman shade of fleshy pink, just like Rafe's. Surprisingly, the only physical trait sheâd inherited from her mother was her nose, which was funny considering that Y/N had always hated hers.
She was content, suckling away at Y/Nâs breast - her cries of hunger long forgotten. The infant hadnât even flinched when a few more of Y/Nâs silent, cold tears spilled over and left small wet spots where her onesie rested over her belly. She had no idea that her parents were upset with each other and she had no idea that in a little more than six months time, sheâd be a big sister and there would be two babies fighting for their attention. Y/N was also clueless, but only as to how she was going to take care of a newborn and a one-year-old simultaneously. Sheâd always thought sheâd have more time than this - more time to spend with just her daughter and Rafe before they decided to have another, but just like her eyes, things always had a funny way of never working out in her favor.
Three soft knocks on the wall withdrew her from her thoughts and she was greeted by her husband idling in the doorway like he needed permission before entering a room in his own house. It was off seeing Rafe Cameron this way - being the one with his tail tucked beneath his legs. It was usually the opposite. He had changed out of his work clothes and was now clad in his favorite pair of sweats that were permanently stained with spit-up. Y/N had tried everything under the sun to get the spots out, but heâd been persistent on not throwing them out.
âCan I come in?â
His voice was barely above a whisper and much calmer than when heâd been yelling at her about twenty minutes ago. He still hesitated crossing the threshold even after Y/N had given him a skeptical nod, but allowed his bare feet to pad over the plush carpet as he joined her on the loveseat in the far corner of the nursery.
He watched their daughter just as Y/N had, taking in her tranquil state as her fingers brushed reflexively against the underside of Y/Nâs breast. Heâd never been able to pry his eyes away every time he watched her nurse. There were no ulterior motives behind it whatsoever. It amazed him each and every time, how Y/N was able to provide their child with everything that they needed to grow with only her body. At first, Y/N hated that Rafe loved sitting in on her feedings, feeling exposed and unattractive despite Rafe's continuous affirmations that it was the most beautiful thing heâd ever had the privilege of witnessing, but over time sheâd grown fond of it.
âI'm sorry for yelling at you,â Rafe started.
âIt was uncalled for,â she quipped.
Y/N sniffled, rubbing her swollen eyes with the back of her free hand that wasnât supporting her daughterâs back as she held her.
âItâs okay. It was a lot to take in. Iâm sorry for yelling at you too.â
She couldnât quite look him in the eye just yet, but she was slowy but surely getting there.
âIt's not okay, actually. Youâre right. Iâm not the one having the baby. Itâs you thatâs got to do all the hard stuff and I know how scary it was last time. I should've been more considerate before jumping the gun.â
He shifted towards her on the cushions, afraid to touch her just yet but still yearning to be closer to her.
The best Y/N could muster was a quiet, âThank you,â before she busied herself by attempting to run her fingers through her babyâs hair and untangle the mess sheâd created while she was sleeping.
âCan I hold you? Please?â his voice was quiet and pleading.
Now was when she turned to face him and she was met with eyes that were just as red-rimmed as hers. She had heard the bathroom sink running for an abnormally long amount of time and a hard, frustrated pounding against the wall shortly after sheâd gone off in the nursery to feed the baby, which meant he must have been trying to muffle the sounds of his own crying when she left their bedroom.
Y/N didnât say anything, only shifting her weight onto one side so Rafe could easily lift her onto his lap in one swift movement without disturbing their daughter. He tucked her shoulder into his neck and softly kissed her skin and his hands moved to mimic hers so they were both holding the baby that was nodding off again in their arms. She found herself relaxing into his loose grip, her head tilting to the side to rest against his.Â
âI love you so much. You know that? Iâd drop everything for you if I had to. I don't care about any of it anymore.â
âNo, you wouldnât,â she refuted, but there was no malice in her tone.
âI wouldnât let you. You try to play it cool and I know that things are different now, but I also know that deep down you really like what you do.â The corner of Rafe's lips turned upwards, suppressing a chuckle at the fact that she really does know him that well.
âWell, just know that I would if you wanted me to. Iâve thought about it a thousand times. I want to be here for you. For her. Donât want to miss anything. I finally got my shot at being normal when I met you and I hate myself sometimes when I think about all of the bullshit I've put you through.â
âDonât,â Y/N paused to press a chaste kiss to Rafe's cheek.
âYouâre a good person, Rafe's. A good dad. A good husband. Please donât ever think that youâre not.â
She felt moisture pool in the dips of her collarbones where Rafe's chin lied, but she didnât acknowledge it.
âIâll be okay. Sorry if I freaked you out earlier. Think I just need some time to get used to it all. Just wasnât expecting Melanie to drop the ball that I was pregnant when all I was expecting was for her to tell me that our kid is in the 99th percentile for weight and then send me on my way.â
This got a chuckle out of him, almost causing him to choke on his tears. He quickly rubbed the sleeves of his sweatshirt against his eyes to dry up any remaining wet spots on his face.Â
âShe is pretty chunky, isnât she?â Rafe jested while thumbing over his daughterâs rounded tummy.
After a moment of admiring their little chunk of a baby, with her milk-drunk eyes and puckered lips, Rafe spoke again.
âTwo babies,â he huffed.
âTwo babies,â she repeated.
His hands moved to caress Y/Nâs stomach. She wasnât showing yet considering that neither of them had even known Y/N was pregnant until today, but he still held her like her belly was the size of a watermelon and he was waiting anxiously to feel a hand or a foot press up against his palm.
âMight be kinda nice. They can share everything and weâll only have to have one birthday party because theyâll be born around the same time. Theyâll go to the same school and probably have the same friends. Kinda like twins.â
âAre you hearing yourself? Rafe Cameron? The party connoisseur? Suggesting his two precious babies share a birthday party?â
Rafe pursed his lips and blushed, recalling the fact that he'd already planned his daughter's first birthday in his head. Down to the tablecloth colors and dinnerware.
âGot me there,â Rafe chuckled.
Their banter was interrupted by a grueling rumbling sound coming from Y/Nâs stomach that Rafe could feel throughout his entire body.
âJesus, Y/N. You hungry too? Whenâs the last time you ate?â
âUhh...this morning I think?â Y/N sighed.
âCouldnât stomach anything when I got home.â
Rafe's heart dropped when he thought of how distraught sheâd been all day while he was gone and with everything in him, heâd wished he would have postponed his meetings to go to check up with her and they could have found out together.
âFound those tomatoes at the store the other day, remember? Want me to make that pasta for you?â
âOhh, yes please,â she immediately perked up at the thought.
âStarting to wonder if that was a craving now that I think about it. Didnât we have it, what? Three nights in a row a while back?â she proposed.
Rafe giggled as he reluctantly removed Y/N from his lap and stood up from the sofa.
âThought it was a bit weird that you wanted it so badly, but I know better than to question you.â
âSheâs going back down. If you give me a minute, Iâll come downstairs and help you,â Y/N said, pulling up the straps of her tank top after realizing her daughter had long since forgotten about her breast and was conked out in her arms.
âI've got it, mamaâ Rafe quickly refuted. âTake a bath or something and Iâll bring it up when itâs done.â
âOkay.â
Y/N couldnât fight the grin growing on her face at the nickname Rafe used that she still hadnât gotten used to.
When she placed their daughter soundly in her crib, Y/Nâs fingers stayed put from where they sat on the railing as she caught herself staring at the sleeping infant once more. Though sheâd felt like her world was caving in on her just a handful of hours ago, the pieces were all coming back together now.Â
Of course, she wanted more children with Rafe. And now she was getting what she wanted. Just like heâd told her back in the bedroom, it wasnât ideal, but theyâd make it work. They always did.Â
With two babies.
#rafe cameron#rafe cameron x reader#dad!rafe#dad!rafe x reader#dad rafe#dad!rafe x pregnant!reader#dad!rafe x fem!reader#rafe x pregnant!reader#dad!rafe cameron#mine#rafe cameron fanfiction#rafe cameron one shot#drew starkey x reader
368 notes
¡
View notes
Text
I love Bashir, too. He's one of those characters that gets (or at least got) a bad wrap in some corners of the fandom. There was a podcast I used to listen to where the hosts hated Bashir because they'd heard from somewhere that the producers had intended Bashir to be a sort of playboy heart throb, with a bit of that thirsty Kirk energy, because the actor was young and good looking (and i believe the current consensus is that he's now distinguished and even more good looking). If you've ever seen that "DS9 Bible" that used to show up on convention merch tables, i believe that Bashir's character description in that thing did give you that impression. (It's been ages since I read that thing, maybe my memory plays tricks.) However, when you watch the show, and pay attention to what it's showing you, and ignore whatever info you got from outside the "text", that's clearly not what Bashir is. It's what he *thinks* he is when he first rolls onto the station. But I don't think the narrative agrees with him. All the characters in this show go on journeys. Being a young genius who thinks he's hot shit is where Julian Bashir's journey begins. Whether some producer wanted him to be a lady's man, or some initial sketch had portrayed him that way, the actual character in the actual show is actually something quite different. Certainly today his relationships with Miles and Garak resonate much more than his ill fated pursuit of Dax. And that's another old man fan story about not giving fandom too much credit, because that shit can steal your joy.
Do fans still like series' bibles? Or have we all realized they're kind of pointless if you're not a writer working on the first half dozen or so episodes? There are certainly far more kawaii things in the dealers' room these days, and that's a good thing.
most relatable character ⣠Julian Bashir STAR TREK: DEEP SPACE NINE (1993-1999)
4K notes
¡
View notes